·--·-
"'~'i.__,. _._...
1
141040
THE EMPTINESS :+
OF EMPTINESS AN INTRODUCTION TO EARLY INDIAN MADHYAMIKA C. W. H...
85 downloads
1275 Views
73MB Size
Report
This content was uploaded by our users and we assume good faith they have the permission to share this book. If you own the copyright to this book and it is wrongfully on our website, we offer a simple DMCA procedure to remove your content from our site. Start by pressing the button below!
Report copyright / DMCA form
·--·-
"'~'i.__,. _._...
1
141040
THE EMPTINESS :+
OF EMPTINESS AN INTRODUCTION TO EARLY INDIAN MADHYAMIKA C. W. HUNTINGTON,
JR.
WITH GESHE NAMGYAL WANGCHEN
MOTILAL BANARSIDASS PUBLISHERS PRIVATE LIMITED e DELHI
->-I
.;lac>
I ~', -,
First published by the Unil,ersity of Hawaii Press, 1989 First Indian Edition: Delhi, 1992
(CJ 1989 University of Hawaii Press All rights re;;erved ISBN:
81~208-0814-2
FOR SALE IN INDIA ONLY Also available at: MOTILAL BANARSIDASS 41 U.A., Bungalow Road, Jawahar Nagar, Delhi 110 007 120 Royapettah High Road, Mylapore, Madras 600 004 16 St. Mark's Road, Bangalore 560 001 Ashok Rajpath, Patna 800 004 Chowk, Varanasi 221 001
PlliNUD IN INDIA BY JAINENDRA PRAKASH JAIN AT SHRI JAINENDRA PRESS, INDUSTRIAL AREA, PHASE I, NEW DELHI
110 028
A-45 NARAINA
AND PUBUSHED BY
NARENDRA PRAKASH JAI!Ii FOR MOTILAL BANARSIDASS PUBLISHERS PVT. LTD., BUNGALOW ROAD, JAWAHAR NAGAR, DELHI
110 007
,, ~', -,
TO MY MOTHER AND FATHER. WITHOUT WHOSE LOVE AND ENCOURAGEMENT THIS BOOK WOULD NEVER HAVE BEEN WRJITEN
..
CONTENTS
Preface Acknowledgments
X X\
PART ONE: CANDRAKTRTI AND EARLY INDIAN MADHYAMIKA
5
Methodological Considerations 2 Candraklrti's Historical and Doctrinal Context 2.1 The Entry into the Middle Way as a Mahayana text 2.2 The bodhisattva ideal and the thought of awakening 2.3 The stages in the path to full awakening 2.4 The perfections of the bodhisattva's path
17 17 19 20 22
3 The Philosophical Language of the Madhyamika 3.1 Sources for the study of Madhyamika thought 3.2 Major figures in the development ofMadhyamika thought 3.3 History and doctrine of the Middle Way 3.4 Major philosophical themes of The Entry into the
25 25
Middle Way
I
.' >·:~
3.4.1 Dependent origination 3. 4. 2 Dependent designation 3.4.3 Emptiness 3.5 The debate with the Yogacara 3.5.1 Sources for the study ofYogacara thought 3.5.2 The Yogacar~ doctrine of "the three marks" 3.5.3 The Prasangika critique 4 The Ten Perfections of the Bodhisattva Path
vii
32 36 40 41
so
55 60 60 61 62 69
Contents
viii
4. 1 4.2 4.3 4.4 4.5 4.6
4.7 4.8 4.9 4.10
The perfection of generosity The perfection of morality The perfection of patience The perfection of energy The perfection of meditation The perfection of wisdom 4.6.1 The concept of." perfect wisdom" 4.6.2 The relationship of perfect wisdom to the other perfections 4.6.3 Candrakirti's presentation of the Sixth Stage The perfection of skillful means The perfection of the vow The perfection of the powers The perfection of knowledge
5 The Emptiness of Emptiness: Philosophy as Propaganda 5.1 The four noble truths 5.2 Wisdom and the nature of illusion 5.3 Knowledge and practice 5.4 Nondualistic knowledge 5.5 The bodhisattva's vow 5.6 Universal compassion, nonclinging, and emptiness
69 70 72 73 75 83 83
The joyous
105 105 109 113 119 122 ' 124
145 149
2 The Immaculate
151
3 The Luminous
153
4 The Radiant
155
5 The Unconquerable
156
6 The Directly Facing
157 157 158 158 158 160
Introduction The non-origination of all things Spontaneous production: The first alternative Production from another: The second alternative Exposition of the two truths The nature of the empirical world as expressed in the truth of the highest meaning
j --
89 92 99 100 103 103
PART TWO: THE ENTRY INTO THE MIDDLE WAY
Sources for the Translation
-i
161
-i )A
!' ..
I
ix
Contents Refutation of consciousness as an ultimate truth Cognition in the absence of an external object Cognition as the result of" ripened potentiality" The unreality ofboth cognition and its object Refutation of a noncognized entity (reflexive awareness) as the ultimate truth The true meaning of teachings on "mind alone" The combination of self-production and production from another: The third alternative Production unassociated with any causal factor: The fourth ~rn~~
Summary of the refutation of intrinsic being Refutation of the intrinsically existent person Introduction Refutation of the self as different from the psychophysical aggregates Refutation of the self as identical to the psychophysical aggregates Refutation of the self as the composite of all five psychophysical aggregates Refutation of the self as equivalent to the body Summary ofthe preceding arguments Refutation of the self as an inexpressible yet real substance The self is com pared to a carriage cognized in dependence on its parts The self as a dependent designation Summary of the refutation of production Defense of the Prasangika's use of deconstructive analysis The sixteen examples of emptiness Introduction The examples of emptiness The four condensed explanations Conclusioll
162 162 164 165 166 166 168 1~
169 171 171 172 172 173 173 174 17 5 17 5 176 177 178 179 179 180 183 183
7 The Far Advanced
185
8 The Immovable
186
9 The Unerring Intellect
187
10 The Cloud of Dharma
188
Th~
Qualities and Fruits of the Ten Stages The qualities associated with the ten stages of the bodhisattva's path
189 189
Contents
X
The qualities associated with the stage of a fully awakened buddha The sameness of all things The three bodies of a buddha The ten powers of a buddha Conclusion Epilogue Notes Bibliography Index
'i ..,... '_
190 190 190 192 194 196 199 269 281
. '
PREFACE
This book contains a study and a translation of The Entry into the Middle Way, a philosophical and religious text composed in Iridia sometime during the first half of the seventh century A.D. by a Buddhist monk named Candrakirti. It was a treatise of critical importance to the development of Buddhism in Tibet and, presumably, in its native India as well. As the title implies, Candrakirti's text is essentially an introductory manual for those wishing to study and practice the soteriological philosophy known as the Madhyamika (middle way) or Sunyavada (doctrine of emptiness). But it would be best to acknowledge from the very start that this "primer" was never intended to serve the needs of an audience like the one to which it is now being presented in its English translation. The first part of the book is therefore aimed at discovering what meaning The Entry into the Middle Way might have for us. It is designed to be read both as a commentary on Candrak1rti's treatise and as an introduction to early Indian Madhyamika. Part 2 began years ago with Geshe Wangchen's intention to produce an unembellished translation of Candrakirti's Madhyamakavatiira, as an introductory text for Madhyamika studies. Before long, however, it became evident that the treatise's extremely terse and cryptic style demanded some sort of annotation if our translation was to be useful to anyone not already familiar with early Indian Buddhist 'literature. Eventually even extensive annotation proved insufficient. In surveying modern publications dealing with the Madhyamika, we began to see that the maze of interpretations could be sorted into a few distinct themes which seemed to preserve, with only superficial variations, the vocabulary and attitudes critiqued by Nagarjuna and Candrakirti. The single exception to this pattern appears to be what I call the "linguistic interpretation." In the face of this mass of Western scholarship, the plan to present a bare translation of the text seemed more inadequate than ever, and yet it was obvious that references to even recent studies had to
xi
xii
Preface
be used with care and accompanied by explicit qualifications. The Madhyamika critique of all views and beliefs is certainly much subtler and much more radical than most Western interpretation indicates. Some introductory remarks were required to explain the situation, and soon the "introduction" had swelled to its present size. The translation represents a joint effort on the part ofGeshe Wangchen and myself, but I assume full responsibility for assessing the significance of Candrakirti's work in the context of modern Buddhist scholarship. Early Madhyamika explicitly claims to operate as a rejection, or deconstruction, of all attempts to create a value-free, objective view of truth or reality. From the very beginning this was the crux of the Madhyamika critique, and in fact it was only much later, in reaction to the writings of Bhavaviveka and his followers, that this total rejection of all fixed views and beliefs came to be specifically associated with the name Prasaiigika. The Sanskrit word dnti, which I have translated "philosophical view," is actually a technical term used in a variety of contexts where it refers to the full range of opinion, belief, and intellectual conviction of any kind, and finally, to any form of reified thought, regardless of whether it is registered in a precisely articulated, rationalist methodology or in a largely unconscious tendency to think only according to certain innate patterns. Ultimately, the Madhyamika's rejection of all views is more the rejection of an attitude or way of thinking than the rejection of any particular concept. This element of Nagarjuna's thought has been responsible for the greatest controversy among both ancient and modern commentators. The Madhyamika sets itself in opposition to a philosophical tradition which was preoccupied with the search for more and more precise technical terminology and had neglected the practical application of philosophical theory, which had previously carried the teachings into the emotive and volitional life of the early Buddhist community. Entirely apart from the pseudoproblem of "original Buddhism," Nagarjuna's critique can be understood as an attempt to reinstate what was clearly felt to be the earlier spirit of the buddha's teachings by prescribing a remedy to the complex of historical developments that had severed theory from practice. His concept of "dependent designation" (prajiiaptir upiidiiya) recognizes that the meaning of words derives exclusively from their usage or application in everyday affairs. Accordingly, the significance of the words and concepts used within the Madhyamika system derives not from their supposed association with any objectively privileged vocabulary supporting a particular view of truth or reality, but from their special efficacy as instruments which may be applied in daily life to the sole purpose of eradicating the suffering caused by clinging, antipathy, and the delusion of reified thought. Thus, although Can-
Preface
xiii
draldrti has no fixed position to defend, it does not necessarily follow that his arguments are mere sophistry, for genuine meaning and significance is to be found in their purpose. The critical distinction here is between systematic philosophy, concerned with the presentation of a particular view or belief ( dr~.ti), and edifying philosophy, engaged in strictly deconstructive activity (the Madhyamika prasangaviikya). The central concepts of an edifying philosophy must ultimately be abandoned when they have served the purpose for which they were designed. Such concepts are not used to express a view but to achieve an effect: They are a means ( upiiya). In the course of the following pages I have referred to the Madhyamika as "soteriological philosophy" or "philosophical propaganda." This has been done, first, in order to emphasize the all-important point that this philosophy cannot, even in theory, be dissociated from a concept of practical application; and second, so that it might be more clearly distinguished as a truly radical departure from the type of philosophical enterprise through which one endeavors to discover or define an objective, value-free view of truth or reality. Finally, it must be stressed that while the work of modern deconstructionists provided the impetus for the linguistic interpretation of the Madhyamika I have developed, and even for some of the technical vocabulary I use to discuss Candrakirti's text, no one-to-one correspondence between two philosophical traditions separated by so much time and space does or can exist. I have used the ideas of Wittgenstein and other modern philosophers simply as hermeneutical tools to analyze the Miidhyamika literature and to extrapolate from it in order to see what meaning it might have for us. And for us, meaning is necessarily embedded in the symbolic forms of our culture and our time. In response to the reader who condemns all such attempts to interpret a text on the ground that the text itself does not employ our linguistic and conceptual structures, I can only throw up my hands in despair of ever understanding any ancient way of thinking. At some point we simply must acknowledge that no translation and no text-critical methodology can be sacrosanct. Translation and all other forms of hermeneutical activity rest firmly on the preconscious forms of linguistic and cultural prejudices peculiar to our historical situation. The most vital challenge faced by scholars is certainly summed up in their responsibility to make their (and their readers') presuppositions entirely conscious and to convey through their work a sense of the wonder and uncertainty of coming to terms with the original text. The interpretive comments of part 1 are offered solely as a tool for approaching the Madhyamika as living philosophy. The translation will provide the reader with an opportunity to Work as closely as possible to Candrakirti's writing.
Preface
xiv
Modern deconstruction and pragmatism are especially valuable to us not only because their concerns seem so near, in certain respects, to those of Nagarjuna and Candraklrti, but also precisely because these philosophies belong to us. In making an effort to interpret a foreign system of thought, we cannot but use the conceptual equipment already at our disposal. Gadamer has recognized and discussed the element of effective history present in understanding, but the two thousand years during which Buddhism spread from one culture to another throughout Asia provide more than ample testimony against both the rationalist ideal of prejudiceless objectivity and its converse, an uncritical romanticism. Those presently engaged in the study of Buddhist literature can do no less than acknowledge openly, as a matter of intellectual integrity, the deeply problematic nature of any concept of meaning based exclusively on the recapturing or repetition of a text's "original message." For the Madhyamika the problem is by no means confined to concepts of textual interpretation. The hermeneutical process involved in this kind of understanding is itself a particular instantiation of the universal mystery of change, and as such it is merely one more facet of the interplay between past and present that incorporates and continually transforms and renews all that we know and all that we are. -C . W . H . Sarnath, India
I
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
The roots of this book stretch back to an idyllic summer in the Himalayan village of Musoorie, where Geshe Namgyal Wangchen and I passed the mornings together carefully working out a first draft of our translation ofCandrakirti's text. But it was not only the translation that began that summer. The issues that laid a foundation for my continuing interest in Miidhyamika also first presented themselves during our long afternoon walks. I soon discovered that Geshe Wangchen is a natural philosopher, that for him no question is irrelevant, no area of experience outside the range of legitimate philosophical concerns. It was certainly then, in the course of our wonderful, timeless conversations, that I began to understand how philosophy can be much more than a system of concepts. For Geshe Wangchen and so many of his countrymen, philosophy is very definiely a way oflife, and philosophical questions must always relate, in one way or another, to the problems of living. No doubt this attitude toward philosophy left its mark on me and guided my approach to the texts throughout the years that this book was taking shape. Since that time many people have contributed to my thinking, and each has influenced my efforts to preserve the spirit of what I learned that summer. I am particularly grateful to Luis 0. Gomez for his careful reading of the first draft of the translation and notes, for his criticisms and suggestions at that crucial stage, and, most of all, for the example he provides-a rare combination of unexcelled scholarship with a deep, personal concern for the responsibilities of teaching. The many hours we spent over coffee paralleled those I had shared with Geshe Wangchen in India, for once again the discussion took place in an atmosphere where the greatest attention could be given to the need for bringing philosophy to bear on the problems of everyday life. Among those who have had the most profound impact on my thought I rnust also mention Bob Sharf, with whom I have had innumerable fasci-
xvi
Acknowledgments
nating conversations on just about everything, and Gregory Schopen, who provided an invaluable service in allowing me to sharpen my initial understanding of the Miidhyamika against the whetstone of his formidable intellect. My reading of the Indian sources has benefited a great deal from the many hours I have shared with Pandit Ram Shankar Tripathi of Sanskrit University, Varanasi. I would like to thank my miliaguru, Madhav Deshpande, for years of continuing encouragement, and, most recently, for his meticulous reading of Sanskrit words and phrases scattered throughout this book. John Newman and William Ames also gave their time and energy to the task of proofreading. Any errors that might still have slipped through must be attributed entirely to changes that have occurred since the text left those capable hands. Dr. Bimal K. Matilal read parts of the manuscript in an early draft and offered valuable suggestions, as did Dr. Meredith Williams, who managed to find time for the task despite her busy schedule as a visiting professor at the University of Michigan. Pat Pranke was always available for an animated epistemological argument, until he disappeared into the Burmese jungle. I am very grateful to the American Institute of Indian Studies for their support during the initial stages of research. And finally I want to thank Liz, whci came late to this particular project but has nevertheless endured more than her share of the tribulations involved in carrying it through to completion. She is everything: a loyal friend, a therapist, a teacher, an unflagging partner in the most abstruse conversations, and a patient, loving wife.
THE EMPTINESS OF EMPTINESS
l
·~
~
p
A
R
T
0
N
CANDRAKTRTI AND EARLY INDIAN MADHYAMIKA
The emptiness of the conquerors was taught in order to do away with all philosophical views. Therefore it is said that whoever makes a philosophical view out of "emptiness" is indeed lost. - N iigiirjuna, Madhyamakafiistra Buddhism is not and never has pretended to be a "theory," an explanation of the universe; it is a way to salvation, a way oflife. -E. Zurcher, The Buddhist Conquest of China
E
I
I I
'·
i
s
E
c
T
0
N
0
N
METHODOLOGICAL CONSIDERATIONS
The study of Asian religions in the West has its roots in nineteenth-century European (largely German) philology, and it has retained to a remarkable degree the imprint of its origins as a branch of the study of Indo-European linguistics. This is especially true for the study of Buddhist literature, where research in the primary Indo-European source languages must be combined with research involving Chinese and Tibetan translations of Indian texts. Although the philological model has been the only approved academic methodology in European and American universities, it has in fact existed alongside a4other approach to the study of the Buddhist tradition-one that claims to be much more interested in Asian religious texts from an "insider's" point of view. Each of these models has displayed its strengths and weaknesses, and yet both of them are to some extent anachronistic vestiges of a style of scholarship that has come under fire from a number of quarters outside the province of Asian cultural studies. The failure of many Asian area specialists to recognize this fact is, I am afraid, a strong indication of the insularity of the field.' This insularity is supposed to preserve the integrity of the discipline as a legitimate, autonomous Fach, but by now it has become dear that both the concept of an isolated discipline and the techniques used to define it (the guarantors of purity) are no longer necessary or desirable. The imposition of such boundaries has led only to further isolation and to the sort of quaint philosophizing which provokes an equally unself-critical and often caustic response from philologists who insist that the texts be allowed to speak for themselves, in their own ~oice. Before I go on to expand these claims a bit, and to sketch the outhne of an approach that seeks to turn the study of Asian religious philosophy in a more promising direction, it will be useful to characterize the existing research models in somewhat greater detail. The philological or text-critical model draws its strength from a rigor-
6
'-
Candrak1rti and Early Indian Miidhyamikc;,
ous methodology resting on the firm intellectual foundation of philology and historiography. The philological component is realized in the establishment of authoritative texts through the production of meticulous critical editions, heavily annotated translations, detailed indexes, and other reference tools. Text-critical scholars rightfully pride themselves on using all available resource materials. Editions are often based on assigning numerous obscure xylographs to a stemma. In the subfield of Buddhist studies translations frequently rely on source texts in three or more classical Asian languages. The historical aspect of text-critical scholarship consists in the contextualization of these editions and translations, relating them to each other and to known historical events. The aim of this approach to the study of religious philosophy is to define a coherent tradition for the continuum of texts which provide the raw material for research activities. Questions of a text's meaning are generally subordinated or dismissed altogether as irrelevant. Rigorous application of text-critical methodology is required of every serious scholar in the field; even brief digressions into philosophical or soteriological issues are the prerogative of established authorities-those who have already demonstrated their ability to produce the approved text-critical studies. Occasionally, however, recognized experts publish entire articles that treat of some particular question of meaning, applying the same methodological principles in an effort to understand the philosophical and religious content of the texts. The "proselytic" model offers a distinct alternative to the text-critical scholar's apparent lack of concern with questions of meaning. Here the text-critical methodology is often applied with considerably less rigor. Editions appear rarely; translations are generally based on a single source and are most often not accompanied by any substantial critical apparatus. Historical information, when offered, usually includes uncritical assumption of conflicting or fantastic accounts, supplied more or less verbatim from Asian sources, which are to be accepted at face value. Occasional attempts are made to justify traditional concepts by comparing them to various Western ideas. The existence of a tradition is taken for granted, and proper application of methodology is presumed rather to grant access to this preexistent tradition than to define it. The entire concept of meaning collapses into the search for an atemporal mens auctoris which is assumed to be present in the source text. Discovery and restitution of this meanihg is the result of close reading of the texts and indigenous commentaries. While it is true that these two models are in general separated by divergent methods and aims, it is also the case that the proselytic scholar seldom works entirely without recourse to certain elements of the text-critical methodology. The text-critical model is accorded the
Methodological Considerations
7
reatest prestige-d~e, no doubt, to i~s .dose asso~iation with what. ~s
~aken to be the scientific method-but 1t IS also subject to frequent cntl-
. m on the grounds that it has become altogether too abstract and sterns · d attentwn · · ·1 in its refusal to give sustame tot h e problem o f meamng. ~r~e hybrids have developed on both ends of the spectrum-"text-critical proselytism" and "~roselytic text criticism" -with varying degrees of success in the academic world. What I most want to draw attention to here is not the differences between these two models of scholarship, but their commonalities, and these can be summarized in two brief observations. First, both models rest on the concept of an objectively present tradition, that is, a tradition which stands apart from the researcher as the object of all attempts to understand or define it. Second, both models in turn rely on the proper application of an approved methodology supposed to insure access to this tradition . These common features are nowhere spelled out, much less defended. Instead, they remain forever behind the scenes, where they operate as powerful forces shaping the results of all our research by predetermining the forms that questions will take before those questions are ever posed. These presuppositions are entirely unaffected by all the accusations and counteraccusations about "rigorous philological standards" versus "the search for meaning." The insularity of their discipline has thus far prevented many Asian specialists from noticing that the interrelated concepts "objectivity" and "method" have become targets for a steadily increasing gale of criticism associated with everything from the philosophical hermeneutics of Gadamer to the pragmatism of James and Dewey, from Nietzsche and Heidegger to Wittgenstein, Derrida, and Foucault. There is insufficient space here even to begin to detail the nature of the change signaled by the writings of these men, or their impact on the assumptions underlying the current models for the study of Asian religious philosophies. As Gadamer has written: The thing which hermeneutics teaches us is to see through the dogmatism of asserting an opposition and separation between the ongoing, natural "tradition" and the reflective appropriation of it. For behind this assertion stands a dogmatic objectivism that distorts the very concept of hermeneutical reflection itself. In this objectivism the understander is seene.ven in the so-called sciences of understanding like history-not in relati?nship to the hermeneutical situation and the constant operativeness of history in his own consciousness, but in such a way as to imply that his own understanding does not enter into the event. 2
In the history of Buddhist studies in Europe and North America, the text-critical and proselytic models of scholarship have exerted a decisive
8
CandrakTrti and Early Indian Madhyamika
influence on our understanding of Buddhism. This book is, however, based on an alternative approach to the study of Buddhist literature. Before all else we must agree on what counts as the meaning of a text. I favor what Harold Bloom calls a "strong misreading"-the preference of Richard Rorty's "strong textualist," who "asks neither the author nor the text about their intentions but simply beats the text into a shape which will serve his own purpose." 3 The strong textualist "is in it for what he can get out of it, not for the satisfaction of getting something right."* Exactly why I see this as a preeminently Buddhist hermeneutic and therefore a preferred approach to studying Buddhist literature-in direct contrast to both the strict text-critical and the proselytic modelscan be inferred from another of Rorty's comm~nts: "The strong textualist ... recognizes what Nietzsche and James recognized, that the idea of method presupposes that of a privileged vocabulary, the vocabulary which gets to the essence of the object, the one which expresses the properties which it has in itself as opposed to those which we read into it. Nietzsche and James said that the notion of such a vocabulary was a myth." 5 As did virtually every classical Buddhist author, in particular Nagarjuna and the other early Indian Madhyamikas, who rejected all assumptions of meaning bound up with the notion of an objective, value-free philosophical view (dr~.ti), thesis (pak~a), or proposition (pratiJiiii). Thanks to the work of Rorty and others, we can begin to appreciate the extent to which strict adherence to the text-critical and proselytic models constitutes a violation of the very texts we bring to our study. Nevertheless, in making the transition within Buddhist studies from an isolated Fach to a more broadly based literary criticism, we need to proceed with caution, so as not to sacrifice the legitimate accomplishments of previous scholarship. It is necessary to dismantle the approved methodology and expose its presuppositions, rescue what is most valuable, and move on. D. S. Ruegg has already pointed the way in his research on thesis and assertion in the Madhyamika: The historian ofthe Madhyamaka-and oflndian and Tibetan philosophy in general-must of course refrain from anachronistically u;ansposing al!d arbitrarily imposing the concepts of modern semantics and philosophical theory, which have originated in the course of particular historical developments, on modes of thought that have evolved in quite different historical circumstances, and which have therefore to be interpreted in the first place within the frame of their own concerns and the ideas they have themselves developed. Still, in studying Indian and Tibetan thought, the importance of religious and philosophic_al praxis, and of pragmatics, must receive due attention. 6
Methodological Considerations
This is precisely the lead I have followed in breaking the closed circle of dogmatic adherence to methodological presuppositions: It seems all the more appropriate and legitimate for us to consider the rejection of a praty.iiii in terms of a pragmatic rather than of an exclusively propositional analysis of assertion and its negation since, from the earliest time, the Madhyamaka-and indeed the Mahayana as a whole-has engaged in the analysis and deconstruction of ordinary language with its conceptual categories. 7
Recourse to the insights of post-Wittgensteinian pragmatism and deconstruction provides us with a new range of possibilities for interpreting The Entry into the Middle· Way and other early Madhyamika treatises, for what we learn in our encounter with these texts is in every way a function of the tools we bring to our study. At present the literature of the Madhyamika has only begun to be appreciated by Western scholars, and study of Candrakirti's writing is beset by all the difficulties inherent in any attempt to grapple with a literary tradition that is remote from us in many significant ways. An Indian or Tibetan monk would approach Candraklrti's work with a rich background of information on the doctrinal issues and technical terminology of other relevant systems. This is how The Entry into the Middle Way is presented by the Tibetan tradition even today, behind the walls of monasteries built by the refugee community in India. Years of preparatory study and ritual practice of all kinds, including meditation, give the young monk a context into which he can set each of Candraklrti's statements and through which he can arrive at an appreciation of the significance of this treatise within the Tibetan Buddhist tradition as a whole. Modem Western readers not only lack such a context but find themselves implanted in a different tradition holding to a wide range of premises, some of them at a great remove from those which form the essential features of Candrakirti's paradigm. This is a difficulty for the general reader and the specialist alike, for even after the most diligent study, many of the concepts expressed in this ancient Indian text may continue to appear as nothing other than intellectual curiosities entirely uprooted from the Buddhist way oflife which alone is capable of imparting to them their most profound significance. One important dimension of the problem has been summarized in an article by A. L. Becker: "Esthetic depth is in most cases impossible to translate, so that a fuller understanding of a distant text requires a step beyond translation, a deconstruction of the translation and a reconstruction of the context of its source, mode by mode, so as to describe and explore its particularity."8
10
CandrakTrti and Early Indian Miidhyamika
The notion ofesthetic depth may not seem perfectly suited to the specialized set of problems relevant to the study of Buddhist technical literature, but it is an especially valuable concept here, because it draws attention to the fact that in approaching such a work as this we must make a strong effort to uncover "the fundamental concern that motivates the text-the question that it seeks to answer and that it poses again and again to its interpreters." 9 I most certainly do not suggest that we should strive to interpret the text through reference to any supposed mens auctoris. As Gadamer and others have argued, meaning is always meaning in the context of history, and history includes both the text and its various interpreters. 10 Yet to the extent that we are unable to appreciate the "particularity" of this treatise within the full context of Candrakirti's writing, not only in its intellectual but also in its ethical and practical dimensions, we may all too easily devalue or misinterpret one or a number of vital Madhyamika concepts. The following example illustrates my point. The Miidhyamika philosopher rejects our most fundamental empirical propositions and the matrix of rationality in which they are cast as matters of strictly normative and ultimately groundless belief. More specifically, according to the Miidhyamika, concepts of logic, and theoretical as well as practical concepts dealing with empirical" phenomena like causation, are all grounded in a particular way of life which is itself groundless. Everyday experience is empty of a fixed substratum for the justification of any type of knowledge or belief, and precisely this lack of justification-this being empty even of "emptiness" -is itself the truth of the highest meaning. With what sort of critical apparatus should we approach such a claim, if indeed it is a claim. It would be inadequate to attempt an investigation with the single question "How would you verify that?" We must also learn to ask such questions as "How would you teach someone what it says?" "How would you hint at its truth?" "What is it like to wonder whether it is true?" These same questions have been phrased elsewhere, in an essay on Ludwig Wittgenstein, 12 and the issues explored in that article are significant for the present attempt at engaging with the Miidhyamika. I suggest that Miidhyamika philosophers can best be understood by entirely disposing of the idea that they are presenting a'series of arguments against one set of claims and in favor of another. Rather, as Rorty has said about the pragmatists: "They would simply like to change the subject."" Like Wittgenstein and the pragmatists, with whom they have much in common, the Miidhyamikas "keep trying to find ways of making anti philosophical points in nonphilosophicallanguage."H In some ways both Wittgenstein and the modern pragmatists have been more successful than Nagiirjuna or Candrakirti at
Methodological Considerations
II
accomplishing this, but in other ways, given the nature of their soteriological aim (which differs considerably from the aim of any modern Western philosopher), the ancient Madhyamikas were surprisingly ingenious in their use of "propaganda, emotion, ad hoc hypotheses, and appeal to prejudices of all kinds" 15 to discredit the views of their contemporaries. We, however, are not living in seventh-century India, nor do we share the presuppositions and prejudices of medieval Hindu society. We have our ownways of thinking and speaking, our own ideas, interests, and aims, our own form of life, shot through with the presuppositions and prejudices of neo-Kantian scientific rationalism. 16 Thus we cannot expect on our own terms to engage in effortless conversation with the Madhyamika, as though it were simply a matter of matching the words and concepts of a seventh-century Sanskrit text with their counterparts in twentieth-century North American English. It is necessary to invest some real energy in preparing to meet these distant texts, and for this project we must be willing from the very beginning .to reassess what we most take for granted. In moving from the vocabulary and topics which monopolize our present conversation to a new vocabulary and a new set of topics suggested by the Madhyamika philosopher, we might begin by considering a number of problems also raised in the article on Wittgenstein cited just above, problems outlined in the following questions: "Why do we feel we cannot know something in a situation in which there is nothing it makes sense to say we do not know?"; "What is the nature of this illusion?"; "What makes us dissatisfied with our knowledge as a whole?"; "What is the nature and power of a 'conceptualization of the world'?"; "Why do we conceptualize the world as we do?"; "What would alternative conceptualizations look like?"; "How might they be arrived at?" 17 These last two questions are especially germane to our present purposes, for unlike Wittgenstein, the Madhyamika goes so far as to develop his own alternative conceptualization of the worlda "conceptualization" which is "no conceptualization," but rather an alternative "form oflife" 1 ~-and to suggest a specific path by means of which it might be actualized. In part 1 I pave the way for our reading of Candrakirti's text by attempting to establish the relevance of his writing to problems crucial to our own time and place. Madhyamika scholarship in the West has made considerable progress during the past century. In spite of this progress or, perhaps more accu/' rately, because of it, many of the basic themes of the Madhyamika are now subject to more than one interpretation. There is, of course, no ,, fault in this. On the contrary, the presence of this controversy should be taken as a sign that the issues involved are not of interest only to the phi.. lologist and the text-critical scholar, who are methodologically indis-
12
CandrakTrti and Early Indian Modhyamika
posed toward considering a text's meaning. Throughout part 1 and the notes which accompany the translation, I refer to these controversies and develop a consistent position on several key points of interpretation which form the nucleus of an approach to the study of the Madhyamika that has recently been gaining favor among Western scholars. This is to be accomplished according to the following general principles. First, I have begun at the beginning, with extended discussions of many of the most fundamental Buddhist doctrines. Wherever possible references to classical sources are linked with suggested translations in English, French, or German and with standard editions in the original languages. I have not tried to be exhaustive in supplying references, but otherwise I have endeavored to apply the historical and text-critical principles rightfully valued by Western Buddhologists. Much of the material presented in sections 2 and 3 will seem very basic to the specialist, but the linguistic interpretation developed throughout should interest anyone concerned with the hermeneutical problem of finding meaning in the Madhyamika philosophy. What may not be entirely evident at first is that this is a holistic interpretation, that is, an interpretation which rests on an appreciation of all aspects of the Madhyamika: intellectual, ethical, and practical. For this reason I have thought it best to leave nothing to chance and to build my argument from the ground up, demonstrating as I go how each of these three aspects influences and is in turn influenced by the other two. In developing this holistic interpretation, it is obvious that I eros! back and forth over the borders of several jealously guarded disciplines, each of them defended by a close-knit group of rigorously trained initiates. But then, this was considered necessary in view of the fact that th{ texts explicating the various systems of Buddhist thought have barel) begun to be translated into Western languages, so that interpretation ol this material has thus far remained, to a considerable extent, in th{ hands of a small circle of scholars who themselves devote years almos1 entirely to developing a mastery of the philological and text-critical tool! necessary to specialize in Asian studies. As I indicated above, this seem! to me an unfortunate situation, for despite the great accomplishments ol the approved philologically based methodology, by giving it an exclusive claim as a hermeneutical strategy we have hindered our search fm meaning in Buddhist literature. The problem is not whether to dispens{ with these valuable text-critical tools but how best to divest the philological methodology of its privileged claim to absolute hegemony in textual interpretation-without either losing touch with the texts or falling intc an uncritical romanticism. My solution attempts to incorporate th{ accepted principles of text-critical scholarship while simultaneous!)
Methodological Considerations
13
rejecting the largely unstated presuppositions of "objectivity" that normally accompany them. Claims to methodological purity necessarily embody (and mask) a fundamental alienation from the objects of research to which they are applied. The question raised by philosophical hermeneutics forces itself upon scholars of Buddhist literature just as it has forced itself upon all scientists and humanistic scholars who are dominated by methodological preoccupations: Is it not likely that the understanding achieved by such "controlled alienation" will be an alienated understanding? "The text that is understood historically is forced to abandon its claim that it is uttering something true. We think we understand when we see the past from a historical standpoint, ie place ourselves in the historical situation and seek to reconstruct the historical horizon. In fact, however, we have given up the claim to find, in the past, any truth valid and intelligible for ourselves. Thus this acknowledgment of the otherness of the other, which makes him the object of objective knowledge, involves the fundamental suspension of his claim to truth." 19 In designing this introductory study I have worked toward developing an understanding of the Madhyamika as a cogent and viable response to a number of broadly based philosophical and religious problems . Accordingly, without abandoning the basic equipment necessary to any text-critical research, I have done my best to bring this discussion into the widest possible arena . 20 Such an approach presents several difficulties. A certain amount of critical apparatus may intrude upon the reader who is primarily interested in the philosophical and religious significance of Candrak1rti's thought, but the citations of Sanskrit fragments and particularly important textual variants, for example, should be of use to the philologist. On the other hand, my frequent references to the work of Western philosophers are likely to strain the attention of text-critical scholars skeptical of any sustained attempt to engage with the content of this literature by bringing it into the mainstream of modern philosophical conversation . My approach takes for granted the insights of Gadamer's concept of effective history. It has been dictated by an effort to follow through with some initial, tentative steps already taken by others in a direction that may eventually lead us beyond any of the present models for the study of Asian philosophy. My second overriding concern has been to place Candrak1rti's work as much as possible within the wider context of Indian Mahayana Buddhism, for Miidhyamika philosophy cannot be properly understood when extracted from the matrix of its soteriological aims . 21 This is not a novel claim . It is more or less commonly acknowledged among Western scholars that we can expect only limited success from a stri~tly historical
CandrakTrti and Early Indian Miidhyamika
14
or philological study of Buddhist texts. J. W. de Jong, himself a highly respected philologist, reflects this understanding when he writes: In the past European orientalists have applied themselves especially to the history of Buddhism, as has recently been underlined by Eliade. Educated in the historical tradition of the nineteenth century, scholars believed they could learn all about Buddhism by studying its history. In the first place they tried to obtain a knowledge of the facts and data in order to form a picture of the development of Buddhist ideas. This method is doomed to failure because in the spiritual life oflndia the historical dimension is of much less importance than it is in Western civilization. The most important task for the student of Buddhism today is the study of the Buddhist mentality. That is why contact with present-day Buddhism is so important, for this will gu:1rd us against seeing the texts purely as philological material and forgetting that for the Buddhist they are sacred texts which proclaim a message of salvation. 22 Ruegg corroboratesjong's opinion: Let me emphasize from the outset that the philosophical side cannot usually be divorced and treated entirely separately from the religious without a certain more or less arbitrary compartmentalization, for no hard and fast dividing line can normally be drawn between the philosophical and the religious in either India or Tibet. Indeed, the Sanskrit word dharma (Tibetan chos) covers a whole complex of ideas belonging to the philosophical, religious and sociological domains which can only be separated one from the other for the particular purposes of a given specialized analysis. It is, I think, correct to say that Buddhism was never exclusively either a purely moral teaching or some more or less "aristocratic" doctrine destined, in the framework of a satiated or pessimistic world view, to provide an escape from the ills and suffering of the world. It is rather a comprehensive soteriological teaching necessarily involving a philosophical foundation-which has a number of featurc;:s in common with other Indian systems-and including an elaborate cosmology closely linked with the stages of meditation. In short, Buddhism is what is commonly referred to as a philosophy and a religion. 23
" I entirely agree with Ruegg here, though I think it necessary to call into question the presuppositions underlying any arbitrary separation of religious, philosophical, and sociological domains in the study of Buddhism. What kind of results can we expect from this sort of "specialized analysis," which by its nature is a distortion of the tradition it claims to interpret? This introduction to the Madhyamika is predicated on a conviction that any attempt at understanding the texts must proceed through an effort to uncover our own presuppositions as well as
Methodological Considerations
15
those of the Indian and Tibetan authors. Any other approach is guaranteed to fail through not taking into account "the interest that is bound together with knowledge." 24 Candrakirti has made it quite clear that the sole purpose of the doctrine of emptiness and the entire Madhyamika critique lies in its function as a means through which all sentient beings can find release from fear and suffering. The great significance this "purpose" or "application" (prayojana) holds for him is both explicit, insofar as he has stated it in several places, and implicit, in that the overall structure of his treatise reflects the ethical and practical aspects of Mahayana Buddhism. This is not, however, simply a matter of apologetics, for independent ofCandrakirti 's isolated remarks and the claims of the Mahayana tradition, a case can be made for the centrality of soteriological concerns strictly on the basis of an analysis of the Madhyamika's approach to the problem of language and conceptual thought. 25 It will become apparent as we proceed that the Madhyamika is a philosophy which relates ideas to action in a particularly subtle fashion. This is not accomplished by arguing against one view as "wrong" and in favor of another as "right," but by demonstrating through any available means that the very fact of holding a view-arry view-keeps one enmeshed in an endless cycle of clinging, antipathy, and delusion. 26 If the Madhyamika cannot be understood in this way-if we insist on interpreting these texts as a set of answers to epistemological or ontological questions-then we have missed the point. We shall produce a vast and solemn technical literature on the categories of truth, the ontology of dream states, and so forth, but we shall never appreciate the Madhyamika's attempt to release us from our obsession with the search for one Truth and one Reality. 27 · "Whoever makes a philosophical view out of emptiness is indeed lost"; held captive within the bonds of his own imagination, he forgets-or never begins to realize-that "a knot made by space is released only by space." 2 B
, 1:"
s
E
c
T
0
N
T
w
0
CANDRAKTRTI'S HISTORICAL AND DOCTRINAL CONTEXT
2. 1 The E.ntry into the Middle Way as a Mahiyina text The distinction between Hinayana (Inferior Vehicle) and Mahayana (Great Vehicle) is one of those issues about which much has been written, while all too little is actually known. For our purposes it is best to avoid all reference to what has been said concerning the chronological and sociological implications of these terms, since it has become increasingly apparent that quite a few widely accepted opinions are based on indefensible premises. It is clear, however, that the Madhyamika critique was specifically directed against an abstract, academic philosophy that had become divorced from the tradition of practical application. Still, we have no reason to suppose that this sort of scholasticism was characteristic of every non-Mahayana school even in Nagarjuna's time, 1 and therefore the terms have been retained here as convenient labels for two different genres of literature. With this in mind, I wish to draw attention to a twofold distinction between the attitudes expressed by Indian Buddhist texts with respect to their particular ontological, epistemological, and soteriological concerns. In each case, The Entry into the Middle Way is on the side of the Mahayana. Ontology. Hinayana texts are those which accept a sort of radical pluralism, analyzing all mundane experience into a precisely determined number of ultimately real, discrete atomic constituents, called dharmas. 2 The individual sense of subjectivity-the experience of a subjectively real "1''-is based on a composite of certain of these dharmas, and as such it is simply a reified concept associated with no ultimately real substance. The ontological position of Mahayana texts is most clearly viewed as a reaction to or critique of the Hinayana ontology. Within the Mahayana literature not only is the individual "I" reduced to a reified concept, but all aspects of everyd~y experience, both subjective and
17
18
CandrakTrti and Early Indian Madhyamika
objective, are emptied of any ontological content, whether defined as "self' (iitman), or as "intrinsic being" or "essence" (svabluiva). The terminological distinction to be noted here is between the Hinayana preference for dharma and the particularly idiomatic use of the Mahayana expression iunyatii (emptiness) as a synonym for tattva (reality). 3 Most contemporary scholars believe that the term emptiness refers neither to existence nor to nonexistence, and this is certainly the interpretation I favor. 4 It is a serious misnomer to identify the ontological position of Mahayana texts as a species of nihilism. 5 Epistemology. The Hinayiina position on epistemological issues finds its source in what might be called a naive realism with a metaphysical twist, for although everyday objects are not real, and therefore our sensory experience and our concepts are erroneous, still there is an objectively real ground to these entities, which is composed of the dharmas that are directly revealed to the meditator. From the Hinayana perspective, incorrigible, assertoric knowledge derives only from contact with these ultimately real atomic building blocks; all other forms of knowledge are based on illusion. The Mahayana position is considerably more complex and subtle, and because of the wide variety of scholastic writings on the subject, it is impossible to set forth a narrowly defined Mahayana epistemology. Of primary importance to all schools, however, is the system of multiple truths, which is given a particularly forcefld interpretation by Candrakirti. 6 According to his exposition of the doctrine, all means of knowledge are only "conventionally veridical," for in every case the act of knowing is contingent on the interdependence between knower and known. This interdependence vitiates all three components of any cognitive act, rendering both subject and object unreal as intrinsically existent entities; under normal circumstances the act of knowing itself is therefore unreliable. 7 As opposed to conventional truth (vyavahiirasatya), the truth of the highest meaning (pararruirthasatya) must be realized through a means of knowledge not grounded in the rigid dichotomy established between reified concepts of subject and object. Knower and known are experienced as interdependent events within a larger matrix of other such transitory, constantly shifting events, through a way -or understanding referred to as prajfiii (wisdom), resulting in advayajfiiina (nondualistic knowledge). Prajiia and advayajfiiina are, however, best defined with reference neither to epistemological nor to ontological categories, but rather to what can be called· an alternative conceptualization of the world 8 actualized in a,n attitude of nonclinging, an attitude engendered within the meditator who has completely internalized the Madhyamika critique. This is the central theme of Candrakirti 's philosophy. 9 Soteriology. By definition, Hinayana literature is concerned with the
Historical and Doctrinal Context
19
uest for individual liberation. Its ideal is expressed in the figure of the sravaka and the-pratyekabuddha), 10 who has transcended all possibility of rebirth, and in the concept of nirvar;1a, the final cessation of fear and suffering. Once again, the Mahayana position is perhaps most easily understood as a critique of the Hinayana ideal. The highest aim is here embodied in the career of the bodhisattva, who is motivated not from a desire to escape his own malaise,, but from his immense compassion for the suffering of all living beings. Nirviii;la, or individual salvation, is set aside as unworthy of the bodhisattva. The goal is now nothing short of full awakening-to become a buddha oneself-for the welfare of all sentient beings.
~rhat (including both the
2. 2 The bodhisattva ideal and the thought of awakening The extremely powerful and heroic figure of the bodhisattva dominates the entire corpus of Mahayana literature, so much so that the Great Vehicle is often referred to as the "vehicle of the bodhisattvas" (bodhisattvaytina). More than upon anything else the bodhisattva ideal is built upon a truly imposing altruistic impulse. The most central characteristics of a bodhisattva are his overwhelming compassion for all living beings and his conviction that they must-each and every one of them -be rescued from all forms of fear and suffering. The bodhisattva aspires to be a buddha not in order to find his own salvation, but out of his concern for an infinite number of beings who must be shown the way out ofthe recurring pattern of conflict and misery. The title bodhisattva is actually a compound of two Sanskrit words: bodhi, meaning "awakening," or, as it is usually translated, "enlightenment"; and sattva, "[a] being." Thus a bodhisattva is "an awakeningbeing," or more fluently pace Candrakirti, "one who is determirted to achieve awakening." 11 Although the bodhisattva ideal plays a vital role in practically every Mahayana text, there are a few particular compositions in which the ~areer of the bodhisattva is treated in considerable detail. Among these, ill addition to the present treatise I might also cite as especially authori· tative sources the Bodhisattvabhiimi (BB), the Mahtivastu (MVA), and the Daiabhiimika (DB), which was in all likelihood the locus classicus for the ten stages described in Candrakirti's text.U The prototype for the bodhisattva figure is ·very clearly none otlter than "our" historical buddha, yet the collection of Jataka tales refer to q ' many as thirty-four other buddhas who are supposed to have pre13 ~eded Sakyamuni. According to the account preserved in the Dipari· ara ]qtaka, 14 at some time in the very r~mote past a certain monk
20
Candrak1rti and Early Indian Madhyamika
named Sumedha achieved arhatship as the result of his dedicated religious strivings, and he was therefore destined to enter nirvfu).a at the time of death. During his wanderings, however, he happened to encounter the buddha Dipaiikara, and as the result of this fateful meeting he was inspired to renounce the immediate fruit of his immense efforts in favor of the vastly more significant goal of becoming a perfect buddha. This vow (prarzidhiina) to attain full awakening for the benefit of all living beings constitutes the first moment in the generation of the thought of awakening (bodhicittotpiida), and from this time on, Sumedha was a bodhisattva. As the tale unfolds, Diparikara uses his supernormal powers to look into the distant future to a time and place where the bodhisattva Sumedha will finally become a fully awakened buddha known as Sakyamuni. A prophecy of success ensues, but the goal will still not actually be attained until the novice bodhisattva has experienced countless births as animal, human, and god. During this incredible period of time he will practice the ten perfections as he passes through the stages to buddhahood, until atJast he will be reborn in the Tu~ita heaven, and from there he will go on to his final incarnation as a prince in the foothills of the Himalayan mountains.
2. 3 The stages in the path to full awakening All of the essential features of the bodhisattva ideal are present in this earlyjataka story, and each one is encountered again in Candrakirti's Entry into the Middle Wtry, where the entire development of the bodhisattva's career is viewed as a series of progressive stages in the generation the thought of awakening. In order to set Candrakirti's work into the larger context of the literature which deals with this topic, I will give a short review of the general characteristics of this path, which leads from the state of an ordinary, worldly person (prthagjana) to the most sublime station of a perfect buddha. The bodhisattva ideal rests upon the premise that every living being has within it the potential of becoming a buddha, and this same premise underlies the entire edifice of Madhyamika thought. According to what seem to be "the most ancient systematic doctrines concerning the career of a bodhisattva," 15 we can speak of three major gradations in the generation of the thought of awakening. The first of these precedes the actual bodhisattva vow, for at this point the future bodhisattva has not yet even conceived of becoming a buddha. Nevertheless, long before his formal vow to attain awakening, he belongs, in some sense, to the "family" (gotra) of the bodhisattvas. He is kind and considerate, and he embodies a certain predisposition toward compassion, which has been acquired over the course of count-
of
l-listoricol and Doctrinal Context
21
less previous births .16 During this preliminary stage he lives in such a way as to accumulate the merit that will eventually lead him to conceive of the possibility ofrescuing all living beings from suffering. Because of his naturally compassionate nature, he will not be likely to commit any act rooted in antipathy or hatred (dve~a), but he is not immune to the influence of clinging or greed (riiga). It would seem that such an individual, with his innate concern for others, would not be inclined to pursue the goal of liberation for himself alone, as had the future buddha Sumedha in the Diparikara]iitaka. In some texts there is a suggestion that the bodhisattva is never seriously disposed to follow the path to arhatship; but he is not initially directed toward any particular spiritual goal (aniyatagotra). 11 The second step is characterized by the first faint glimmerings of aspiration toward full awakening. The common person is still quite unrefined, but he is now anxious to be on his way, for he has first entered the vehicle of the bodhisattvas. His natural predisposition toward compassion is beginning to ripen into a self-conscious aspiration truly to serve all living beings, although at this point his thought of awakening is so faint that it can well be c9mpletely lost unless it is nurtured and encouraged to grow in the proper manner. This is accomplished in four ways: ( 1) by contemplating the example of the buddhas; (2) by reflecting on the faults and affiictions inherent in a life governed by strictly self-centered concerns; (3) by closely observing the miserable conditions in which all living beings are immersed; and (4) by cultivating a strong aspiration toward the attainment of the virtues of a buddha.18 During this period he must concetltrate on doing good, for despite his great feelings of compassion, his basic tendency is still directed toward self-aggrandizement at the expense of others. The reason for this is that his realization of emptiness is very slight, growing out of a mere inferential understanding of the teachings derived from study and careful reflection. He has yet to actualize this understanding through meditation and practice of the perfections. Only a very few pass beyond this, but eventually some do succeed in purifying their aspirations so that they enter the first actual stage of the bodhisattva path, called "The Stage of Pure Aspiration" (suddha.sayabhiimi), or simply "The Joyous" (pramuditii). Candrakirti's account begins here. With his ascent to The Joyous, the wayfarer on the path is no longer a common person, for the transition has been made to the status of a saint (iirya), from which there can be no retrogression. Preparation for becoming a bodhisattva is now complete, and the vow is taken to attain full awakening for the sake of all creatures. As Suzuki has indicated, "vow" is rather a weak term to convey the fprce of the Sanskrit ~~fs.)~1e~
ID&C~~;Q C)~~C})
22
CandrakTrti and Early Indian Modhyamika
prartidhiina, which is actually "a strong wish, aspiration, prayer, or inflexible determination to carry out one's will even through an infinite series of rebirths." 19 The thought of awakening has by now become a fully conscious realization of the necessity to follow the path to perfect buddhahood. Stages 1 through 7 are devoted to the active pursuit of the bodhisattva ideal; the eighth stage is called "The Immovable" (acalii), and it marks the shift to a qualitatively different aspect of the bodhisattva's career. The emphasis is then no longer on actualization of the thought of awakening, but rather on the nondualistic knowledge and higher mental faculties (jniiniibhijiiiiniicarya) indispensable to all buddhas. These ten stages of the path correspond to a set of "perfections" which are the subject of chapters 1 through 10 in The Entry into the Middle Way. Candrakirti has obviously emphasized the role of philosophical investigation in the larger context of the path, primarily because the Madhyamika makes its unique contribution in this area. Nevertheless, the sixth stage, which deals with perfect wisdom (prajiiiipiiramita}, treats only one of a series of perfections, and each of the other stages represents an indispensable step in the bodhisattva's development. Moreover, wisdom is much more than the ability to render a formal interpretation of philosophical concepts.
2.4 The perfections of the bodhisattva's path Both Candrakirti and Nagarjuna are quite emphatic about the dangers of an incorrect understanding of the concept of emptiness, 20 and Buddhist teachers often remind their students that while mistaken beliefs concerning the intrinsic nature of empirical things are relatively easy to correct, like dousing a fire with water, if one begins to grasp at some sort of reified notion of emptiness, then it is as if the water intended to extinguish the blaze has itself caught fire. The chances of developing this sort of fatal misconception of emptiness as either "absolute being" or "unmitigated nothingness" are substantially enhanced if one relies en~rely on intellectual powers of discrimination, and it is generally accepted that the most effective means to combat this danger is to cultivate an attitude of nonclinging from the very start, by following the full length of the path in all its theoretical and practical aspects. As we shall discover in discussion ofthe two truths, reified concepts of intrinsic being (svabhiiva) associated with the apprehension of an "I" or any other conceivable subjective or objective phenomenon must be unqualifiedly rejected. However, the "I" and all other empirical pheonomena are to be accepted or rejected solely on the basis of their
Historical and Doctrinal Context
23
causal efficacy, or lack of it, within the sociolinguistic nexus of conventional states of affairs. It is clinging that must be totally eradicated, and in order to accomplish this, one must first begin to distinguish, through a process of introspection, the illusory, reified concept of self from the strictly conventional or pragmatic notion of an "I" as the agent of mental, verbal, and physical activity. This kind of introspection certainly does not exclude the intellect's analytical powers, but it does embrace much more than intellect, since it rests on a balance of thought and action . All the features of the path outlined in Candrakirti's text are intended to operate in harmony, each one reinforcing the others and contributing in its own way toward a total reconfiguration of one's form of life . Intellectual understanding evolves into the wisdom of personal experience, and verbal and physical action ripens into skillful means. "Action," which here includes the practice of meditation and the other perfections, is both the outward, ritualized expression of an inward, spiritual condition or attitude and the determining factor in the formation of a person's future experience. In this sense, perhaps, we can begin to comprehend the peculiarly Indian notion of karma, for it is clear that we are constantly creating ourselves through the vector of our volitional acts. Just as an artist develops the capacity to express himself freely and creatively in his work through mastery of technique, so in a similar way, through mastery of action, the bodhisattva cultivates the thought of awakening in a spirit of compassion and wisdom. The perfections Candrakirti discusses are perfections precisely because they serve to integrate practical training and academic study of philosophy, or real and ideal. Each perfection is associated with its own stage in the path, and each of the first six is said to possess a dual nature which resides initially in its causal or mundane aspect, and secondarily in its potential for being transformed into a supramundane effect. 21. With respect to the first five perfections, this means that they are initially cultivated in reliance on their mundane capacity to function as causal links in the generation of perfect wisdom. There is, however, a second all-important quality to action inspired through the soteriologically oriented philosophy of the Madhyamika critique. Such action is said to purify the mind by cleansing it of all reified nly way we can find meaning in the Madhyamika's rejection of all views? Or is the compulsion to do so rather a failure on our part to meet the challenge offered in these texts and to free ourselves entirely from the grip of our present way of thinking and perceiving? There is an alternative: "We must invent a new conceptqal system that suspends, or clashes with the most carefully established observational results, confounds the most plausible theoretical principles, and introduces perceptions that cannot form part of the existing perceptual world ." 4 Note that a truly new conceptual system is incommensurable with the old, it "clashes with" or "suspends" the old system, but does not contradict it: "A set of ideas or actions 'clashes' with a conceptual system if it is either inconsistent with it, or makes the system appear absurd ." 5 Consider once again, in this light, what Candrakirti is saying about the incommensurability of the two truths: "If everyday experience were authoritative, then common people would perceive reality. What necessity would there be for those others, the saints? And what would be accomplished by following their path? It is unreasonable for such foolishness to be accepted as entirely authoritative. Everyday experience is not authoritative in every respect, and therefore it does not contradict the reality [expressed in the soteriological truth of the highest meaning] . " 6 According to the Madhyamika, our obsession with the rationalistic structure of epistemological and ontological propositions is symptomatic of a pathology that infects our entire form of life. The disease is particularly difficult to treat , for it is rooted in deep, subconscious strata of natural interpretations from which it derives powerful emotional and volitional associations that in turn set up tremendous resistance to its even being seen as a problem . Critical discussion of epistemological and ontological problems will never provide any escape from the closed circle of this way of thinking and speaking. 7 Moreover, although certain concepts may be of great practical value, no concept, regardless of how pure or refined it may appear, is immune to the possibility of infection from the power of inherited beliefs. An incommensurable form of truth and reality can be known only through contrast, and ultimately through direct experience, by first learning to identify and then totally to relinquish all obsession with our present observational language and the concepts and perceptions associated with it. This is the step that has already been taken by Nagarjuna. He is speaking to us from "the other shore" of perfect wisdom: "If any object were apprehended by perception or any other means of knowledge, then it would have to be affirmed or denied ; but since this is not the case I am susceptible to no critical argument." 8 This does not mean that either conceptualization or perception can
Philosophy as Propaganda
109
be denied outright, but that they must be transmuted through being placed in the larger conte~t that is _ope~ed to view with t?e growing appreciation of an alternative, sotenolog1cal truth, a truth mcommensurable with our normal ways of thinking and perceiving. It is at this point that we enter the sphere bf the fourth and last noble truth: the truth of the path leading to the cessation of suffering for all living beings. Treading the path means cultivating perfect wisdom, and the cultivation of perfect wisdom initially entails a rigorous reevaluation of empirical experience, culminating in the realization that our concepts and percepts have been profoundly influenced by inherited belief structures that cannot be entirely illuminated by any strictly rationalistic analysis. And just as our ideas and perceptions are conditioned by other ideas and perceptions, so every aspect of the contents of perception-every object-necessarily exists in dependence on the others, as well as on its association with a specific, conditioned state of consciousness. Every element of conceptualization and perception owes its individual identity to an interrelated web of causes and conditions, so that it does not bear its meaning or existence in itself, and on this account concepts of a selfsufficient generative matrix or a transcendental ground are inherently problematic. By virtue of its most fundamental nature, as illuminated through the Madhyarnika's deconstructive analysis, all experience is radically contextual. All things are necessarily conditioned and quite empty of independent existence. All words are contingent and devoid of fixed, referential meaning. When the bodhisattva has begun not only to understand the analysis but to assimilate its implications emotionally and volitionally through having followed the path in all its dimensions for some time, his own tendency to cling begins to fade. No matter how compelling the imaginary referents of words and concepts may seem, he will turn from them and search for truth and reality not in any particular epistemic act or antic place, but in a form of life expressing a certain attitude toward the context of relations, the whole of everyday experience.
5.2
Wisdom and the nature of illusion
Here one point must again be especially stressed: When the Madhyamika argues that the world as perceived through the veil of reified thought is similar to an illusion, this does not imply that conventional affairs should (or could) be cast aside, as though they were insignificant o_r adventitious. On the contrary, patient observation of everyday expenence is absolutely necessary, for the problematic natmc of one's atti-
110
Candrakirti and Early Indian Madhyamika
tude and form of life is revealed solely through an intimate encounter with the world . 9 Unwarranted assumptions and unconscious presuppositions are uncovered and abandoned one after another as the meditator probes deeper and deeper into the nature of conceptual and perceptual processes, continually rejecting static reified concepts as he gains facility with the self-deconstructing symbolic forms of the Madhyamika. The sense of being in copstant relationship begins to permeate all experience. Entities no longer seem to possess intrinsic existence but are perceived as partners produced and sustained in relationships of reciprocal dependence. Event~ ally it becomes apparent that any form of meaning (truth) and existence (reality) is bound up in this deeply paradoxical nexus of interpenetrating relations . All concepts are susceptible to reification, yet study and critical reflection play a central role in the soteriological strategy of the Madhyamika, where key philosophical concepts operate within an interpretive schema that is particularly resistant (though certainly not impervious) to the stultifying influence of inherited natural interpretations. One must learn how to identify and resist the compulsive need to refer the illusion fostered by language and conceptual thought beyond everyd~y experience to some more sublime reality. The Madhyamika's argument here actually amounts to insistence that intellectual and spiritual integrity is maintained only by refusing to accept the content of everyday life as accessible to any exclusive, ultimately binding symbolic representation . Conventional experience is mere appearance only in the sense that there is no truth or reality other than what appears to us in the context of these intertwining relations of meaning and existence: The Blessed One clearly demonstrated that things arise in dependence on causes and conditions, and he rejected the possibility that origination could be without cause, from one cause, or from a multiplicity of causes, or that things could be produced from themselves, from what is other than themselves, or from both. By this rejection the conventional (screened) intrinsic nature of conventional things is revealed as it stands: Dependent ongination is itself conventional because it is not produced through atry intrinsic being. From the perspective of the wisdom of the saints, there is no cessation and no movement. 10
Here is the crux of the paradox that the Madhyamika asks us to accept. The soteriological truth of the highest meaning, as dependent origination and emptiness, is itself the illusory, conventional truth, because it necessarily appears in a self-contradictory, misleading form. In other words, everyday experience is, for the bodhisattva, a necessary fiction. The doctrine of dependent origination, a fundamental Madhyamika
Philosophy as Propaganda
Ill
concept, embraces the entire spectrum of actual and possible ~tates of affairs and describes the circumstances through which the totality of relations that gives meaning and structure to life is experienced as empty and devoid of any foundation for clinging. But this emptiness, which is implied in every aspect of everyday affairs, is no more than a useful designation (a prajiiaptz) to apply in study and practice as a means to a soteriological goal-the end of fear and suffering for all sentient beings. With this we have circumscribed the territory governed by the first property of wisdom, or "wisdom as a cause," which is a detailed doctrinal presentation of the way in which all mundane experience can be seen as the expression of emptiness. This "seeing" is also referred to as "non-seeing," for there is actually nothing new to see: Suppose that a man with diseased eyes is holding a bone-white vase in his hand, and under the influence of an optical defect he sees what appear to be clusters of hair on the surface of the vase. He wants to remove the hairs and so begins to shake the vase when a second man with normal vision happens to pass by. Puzzled as to this odd behavior, the second man approaches and begins to stare at the place where the hairs should appear. Naturally, he apprehends no such hairs, and consequently he forms no conception of existence or nonexistence, of hair or non-hair, nor even of darkness or any other attribute with respect to these hairs. When the man with an optical defect tells the second man about his idea that he sees hairs, then the second man may desire to clarify this misconception by stating that the hairs do not exist. This is indeed a statement of negation; however, the speaker has not in this case rejected [any conventionally real entity). The man without any optical defect sees the reality of the hairs, while the other man does not. In just the same way, there are those who are stricken with the optical defect of spiritual ignorance so that they are incapable of perceiving the reality [expressed in the truth of the highest meaning). The intrinsic being 6f[ conventional things) apprehended by them is itself nothing more than [illusory] conventional form. The blessed buddhas, however, are without any trace of spiritual ignorance, so that they perceive the hairs in the manner of one who is not affiicted with an optical defect; that is, the intrinsic nature of[ conventional things] seen by them is itself the truth of the highest meaning. One may ask how it is that they are capable of seeing an intrinsic nature like this, which is invisible. -True, it is invisible, but they "see" it by means of "non-seeing." 11
What is called for is a new form of life, one in which people are able to r~spond to sensory stimulation b;• seeing it as an instantiation ofdependent originatzon and emptiness, without ho.ving to make an intervening inference. 12 The first property of wisdom therefore acts as an introduction to the concept of emptiness, and it is rooted in what could accurately be called philosoph-
112
Candrak.Trti and Early Indian Modhyamik.a
ical propaganda. Study and critical reflection provide an intellectual context in which the concept of emptiness can be given a soteriologically efficacious interpretation founded on an appreciation of its application. This first type of wisdom is therefore a "cause" for the actualization of emptiness in a new form oflife. When properly disciplined through study of the Madhyamika's deconstructive philosophy the intellect is a powerful and efficient guide that can point the bodhisattva in the,__right direction and even conduct him along the way for some distance. Inherited patterns of conceptualization, perception, and linguistic usage dictate that we either devalue rationalism as mere discursive thought or place a premium on logical precision, or else do both simultaneously, fragmenting ourselvesi into intellectual and spiritual components that can be welded together only through the power offaith. Here, as elsewhere, the Madhyamika cuts a middle way between these two extremes. Rational thought should be used, as it is a particularly effective tool, but it is nothing more than a tool, and critical thinking alone is not enough to bring about the actualization of emptiness. The fruit of deconstructive analysis must be allowed to ripen in personal experience. A solid intellectual grasp of the symbolic structure of the Madhyamika philosophy must be cultivated through practice. In order to proceed, the bodhisattva must learn how to cease clinging to every concept of "truth" and "reality"-including emptiness-by waiting patiently and watching with all his attention focl.Ised intensely, through meditation, on the network of interpenetrating relations that is gradually revealed through study of the texts and critical reflection on what has been learned. An acute intellectual sensitivity to the fundamentally misguided nature of all attempts to impose /an' exclusively rational grid on empirical experience is the initial and crucial step in dearing the way for the noninferential experience of emptiness, which constitutes the second property of wisdom. By prac./ tieing all the perfections in conjunction with the study of philosophy the bodhisattva grounds understanding of the conceptual tools in increasing proficiency with their soteriological use. The actualization of emptiness, or "wisdom as an effect," is much more than just another interpretation of the concept. In order to move from wisdom as a cause to wisdom as an effect, one needs to reach an appreciation of the manner in which philosophical understanding becomes something more than rational. To understand a concept is to understand its use. Whether in philosophy or in day-to-day affairs, there is no meaning apart from use, and therefore "to understanc;l" means "to use a word correctly and to act in accord with its correct usage." For the Madhyamika correct understanding of a concept can never be grounded in an abstract, privileged notion of truth or in any intuition of an ultimately real substrate. Cor-
Philosophy as Propaganda
113
rect understanding is based on an appreciation of correct behavior, and for any Buddhist, "correct behavior" is defined in soteriological terms : contributing to the liberation of all beings from fear and suffering. Whether or not a concept has been understood is judged by one's facility in using it, and the strictest criterion for verifying an interpretation is the criterion of application. If, for example, a child claims to have understood the concept of counting, his claim is verified by his actually counting. Otherwise his understanding would be nothing more than abstract and sterile theory. According to the Madhyamika, all veridical concepts are alike in this way, including the concept of emptiness . This is why emptiness and the other primary symbolic forms of the Madhyamika cannot be understood without taking their purpose ·into account.13 It also explains the significance of the distinction betWeen wisdom as cause and as effect.
5.3
Knowledge and practice
It may help to clarify matters at this point if we note that much of the present discussion turns on a single issue: How is a concept-arry concept-understood? We have already seen that from the Madhyamika's perspective the meaning of a word or concept invariably derives from its application within a context of sociolinguistic relations and not through reference to any self-sufficient, independently real object. Meaning is ever and always couched within an undulating matrix of natural interpretations that conditions concepts and perceptions, emotional and int~ectual needs and desires, and ultimately, conscious and preconscious attitudes toward all of everyday experience. Moreover, it is evident on this account that meaning is flexible and subject to constant, subtle revision. Altogether novel concepts evolve out of the cru~ible of familiar patterns of thought ~nd perception, altering and amplifying old concepts so that they assume new and various nuances of meaning. ~earning occurs neither as an act of will nor through any dramatic Intellectual tour de force, nor does it come about spontaneously and entirely without cause . Rather, knowledge evolves through the individual's participation in a process of theoretical and practical training, wh~ch enables the adept to perceive directly every aspect of experience as. Involved in new and pnprecedented modes of relationship-both With each other, and with the perceiving consciousness itself. This has been called both a "nonreferential" and a "nonegocentrist" theory of meaning: Th us It · IS · precisely the reaffirmation oflanguage, free of any suppl)sed absolute substratum, as a practical, conventional process, an ordinary
114
CandrakTrti and Early Indian Modhyamika
activity of human beings, a "form oflife" (Ltbensform) that sets the nonegocentrist philosopher apart from the skeptic and the mystic, who make the classic absolutist mistake of thinking that lack of an absolute basis is no basis at all, lack of an absolute process is no process at all, lack of an absolutistic, privately grounded language is no language at all, lack of a mathematically absolute, perfect logic is no logic at all, and so on. 14
Normally one comes to understand the meaning of a word or concept through a process of socialization, where repeated practice serves to impress upon the mind a pattern of associations out of which the meaning of the word or concept emerges as a single element in the sociolinguistic context which reflects one's entire form of life. Buddhist train-. ing, including as it does both theoretical and practical components, replicates this natural process for a similar effect. The meaning of a philosophical concept emerges from a complex fabric of relations gradually woven in study and practice. Meditation is the principal and most powerful tool for incorporating theoretical understanding or belief into the total context of a form of life entailing immediate, noninferential perception of key Buddhist concepts. This process is referred to as "the actualization of emptiness"; "the transformation of wisdom as 'cause' to wisdom as 'effect' ";or "the realization of perfect wisdom." We are here concerned exclusively with an indirect, inferential or theoretical understanding of emptiness which is, by the standards of the Madhyamika's approach to language and conceptual thought, a very incomplete and superficial stage of understanding in comparison with knowledge that is fully integrated into the emotional, volitional, and perceptual dimensions of life. Still, even the scholar whose sole and legitimate concern is with wisdom as a cause would never get beyond his own presuppositions by seeking to determine what "emptiness" refers to. He or she must learn to ask different sorts of questions and to appreciate the implications of this radically different concept of meaning: "What use is made of the concept of emptiness?" "How is it applied within the context of everyday experience?" The meaning of the philosophical and soteriological concept of emptiness must be sought for in its application in a specific regimen of training; ultimately, correct understanding must be demonstrated-not merely discussed-by a life founded on nondinging. In the final analysis, all that can really be said regarding the actualization of emptiness is that one's understanding evolves into the total assimilation of an alternative form of life with its own conceptual and perceptual structure and its own strong sense of commitment and responsibility derived from a very specific set of moral obligations. Previously one was held captive by a picture generated out of the natural interpretations and associated
Philosophy as Propaganda
115
bservational languages which exert such a powerful influence over all so tha~ h~ was unable to think or act wi~h any true cl~rity. This new form of hfe 1s to be absolutely free from the mfluence of relfied thought, and thus completely harmonious with the contextual, rela-_ tional nature of the world. Intellectual reflection alone cannot cause such a radical shift not only in behavior, but in the most basic patterns of conceptualization and perception . To this end, both the ability to master theory and the willingness to engage in practical training are necessary, for one must understand how to apply the concept of emptiness. The concern with eliciting this form of behavior and the conceptual and perceptual changes that grow out of it is the only justification, within the Madhyamika literature, for insistence on the practice of meditation and the other perfections in conjunction with the academic study of philosophy. It is, of course, quite permissible to pursue the study of Nagiirjuna's philosophy as an entirely academic enterprise. Devoted scholars could go on interpreting the concept of emptiness indefinitely, arguing about its meaning in terms of this or that rationale and setting forth ever more subtle and sophisticated analyses, only to refine them on some subsequent occasion, or to retract them altogether in favor of some new hypothesis. There may come a time, however, when the inherent limitations of this unending process of inquiry begin to be apparent, when the desire to continue begins to feel like a compulsion to go back over the same ground again and again. This is the point at which the problems mentioned in section l of this study arise of their own accord. 15 Where wisdom as an effect is concerned, the scholar must be prepared to look into these and a whole range of new and different questions: What exactly would the word knowledge mean in this context? What sort of knowledge is sensed to be necessarily inaccessible to an exclusively text-critical, philological analysis? Under what circumstances does the search for formal interpretation of a text-or of experience-cease to be a significant activity and begin to manifest the signs of an oddly self-perpetuating, compulsive pattern of behavior? All of the preceding questions could be compressed into a single problem: To what extent does the insatiable desire for concepts of epistemic truth ~nd ontic reality constitute the imposition of an unwarranted and essentially manipulative a priori demand on the subject of inquiry, whether it be a single philosophical text or the whole of everyday experience? In the West this way of thinking has its historical roots especially in Des~artes and Kant, while in India it may be traced back in part to the Influence of Sanskrit grammatical theories on later speculative philoso~hy. In both cases, howeve'r, the demands of rationalism have their own Internal dynamic in the emotionally charged network of natural inter-
~xperience,
116
CandrakTrti and Early Indian Madhyamika
pretations that give shape not only to the quest for knowledge, but to knowledge itself, and ultimately to all forms of experience. The problem of rationalism-its inability to break free from its selfimposed demands-is an issue that lies at the heart of the Prasangika's quarrel with rival Buddhist theoreticians, and it is equally relevant to anyone trying to find meaning in the central concepts of the Madhyamika, for the role of rational thought in the process of understanding is a matter subjected to the most intense scrutiny by Nagarjuna and Candrakirti: "Although this exposition of the reality [expressed in the truth of the highest meaning] is profound and frightening, it will certainly be understood by a person who has previously cultivated [his textual study in the practice of meditation]. Any others will never comprehend it, despite the breadth of their learning. One must clearly perceive that all other philosophical systems are composed simply as justification for their own unstated presuppositions." 16 The . Madhyamika leaves open the possibility that philosophical uncertainty, confusion, and doubt can be resolved once and for all, yet he insists that this happens-that one obtains "true," functional knowledge of the concept of emptiness-only upon mastering its application. In application the concept of emptiness is no different from any other mundane notion (for example, causality or production). Rationalism flounders in paradox and contradiction that need pose no obstacle to ·practice. The farmer does not question whether or not a sprout is produced from a seed but perceives that it happens through experience unmediated by theory and inference, and he acts accordingly. He plants the seeds so that he and his family can enjoy an autumn harvest. Similarly, the bodhisattva well trained in study and practice of the Madhyamika's soteriological philosophy no longer questions whether or not all things are in and of themselves "unreal"-he simply perceives this and acts in accordance with what he perceives. The concept of emptiness is distorted when forced to serve as the object of an inferential judgment, for it cannot be effectively taught through the inculcation of a new system of beliefs or a new set of expectations about the world. On the contrary, one must learn the meaning of emptiness through a meticulous deconstruction of all present beliefs and the entire form of life from which they spring, and this can only be accomplished by engaging in a specific training designed to cultivate an unwavering mindfulness with respect to the most trivial details of dayto-day affairs. An alternative form oflife is not necessarily a function of believing or expecting different things about the world in which we live. Liberation from old and deeply en grained patterns of thinking and perceiving need be neither a supernatural nor a miraculous phenomenon, but rather a very mundane affair. Dreams of magic and talk of mystical
p
Philosophy as Propaganda
117
intuition are all too often merely alternative, slightly more pleasant ways of masking the old destructive patterns of clinging and manipulation. As Gregory Bateson has written, "A miracle is a materialist's idea of how to escape from his materialism . . . . And like applied science, it always proposes the possibility of control. So you don't get away from all that way of thought by sequences into which that way of thinking is already built in." 17 Compare Nagarjuna: "Everyday life (samsara) is not the slightest bit different from salvation (nirvarza), nor is salvation the slightest bit different from everyday life." 18 And Candraklrti: "The Lord of the world taught that no salvation is itself salvation. A knot made by space is released only by space." 19 In Candrakirti's writing, the analysis of the Madhyamika's soteriological philosophy is presented as a revolutionary deconstruction of all views and beliefs which seek justification through reference to a set of presuppositions discoverable a priori, regardless of how rational or virtuous or sublime these views and beliefs may seem to those who hold them. 20 Ultimately, given the Madhyamika's notion of the task of philosophy, the change engendered through rigorous training in application of the concept of emptiness is no abstract matter of cultivating another, alternative view or belief. To actualize emptiness is to affirm one's membership in the universal context of interpenetrating relations which gives meaning and structure to human activity. And this affirmation of membership is registered in a transformation of behavior which simultaneously fosters and is fostered by a change 1in the nature of one's experience of the everyday world-a world which no longer appears as a collection of intrinsically real, compartmentalized objects, each one dissociated from the others and from a similarly isolated, fragmented "1." For present purposes, however, the essential point is not whether onf in fact endeavors to actualize the concept of emptiness through practict· of meditation and the other perfections, but rather that one appreciate ~ how the Madhyamika's approach to language and conceptual thought i~ c~uched in a particular philosophical paradigm. This alternative para· dlgm defines the task of philosophy in precise tffms, through the syste· m~tic working out of a way to integrate theoretical understanding con· sclously and harmoniously with everyday life. I have said that ~~eriology is built into the philosophy of the Madhyamika, and that agarjuna's thought is invariably distorted by any speciali~ed analysis '" . that . d presuppositions . . . .rests on unexamme en,orcmg an ar b"ltrary d.lShnctlOn between " religion" and "philosophy." This claim can now be ~xpanded as follows : First, there is no question that the Madhyamika lterature . . . . al a vanety o f responses to t h e vanous onto Iog1c d . ·lncorporates an epistemological problems of "normal philosophy'' (in the sense of
118
CandrakTrti and Early Indian Madhyamika
Kuhn's "normal science," where all members of the intellectual community agree on what counts as a legitimate problem). Second, however, is the important fact that every one of these responses is revolutionary, in the sense that its meaning is self-consciously prescriptive and devoid of any pretension to value-free objectivity. In other words, the central concepts of the Madhyamika are inextricably linked with a revolutionary approach to the problem of meaning as a problem of application. Given this radically different approach to language and conceptual thought, the meaning of emptiness is to be sought not in a new definition of truth or reality, but in the concept's uniquely efficacious role in actualizing a radically new form of life. Such a form of life takes shape in the ethical and practical dimensions of the Madhyamika philosophy as well as in its language, which embodies the assumption of "an entire alternative world . . . a dream-world [necessary] in order to discover the features of the real world we think we inhabit." In philosophical discourse interpretation of a concept remains an ongoing process, but by the standards of the Madhyamika paradigm an ultimate criterion for "correct" interpretation can and must be offered -the criterion of correct application. If a concept is applied correctly, then what sense does it make to say that it has not been understood? And, by the same token, if it is proposed in isolation from any inherently correct application, then what possible justification can be offered for the claim that a given interpretation ought to be accepted as authoritative, or even viable? Words and concepts are necessarily used within a context of relations between speaker and listener, and meaning is meaning only because of its consequences for the sociolinguistic. community. 21 Taking into account both the Madhyamika's concept of nonreferential meaning and the soteriological purpose of the philosophy, it is evident that the deconstructive analysis presented in The Entry into the Middle Way can be properly appreciated only in the full context of its use. The word emptiness operates as a key term in the metalanguage of the Madhyamika philosophy, which draws attention to the groundlessness of all forms of knowledge and belief. It is applied to problems of logic, epistemology, ontology, and ethics in such a way as to play a central role in the overall soteriological strategy. Like any other meaningful concept, then, the concept of emptiness must be understood not through ostensive definition but through ostensive training. In learning to appreciate the Madhyamika along these lines the boundary between philosophy and religion begins to dematerialize, revealing the arbitrary nature of distinctions it had created and preserved. This is not to confound philosophy with mysticism, or the reverse, but it would be misleading to represent the Miidhyamika solei_Y as a mystical doctrine, as though it were exclusively concerned with reh-
Philosophy as Propaganda
119
gious problems irrelevant to the properly_ philosophical q~~st for valuefree , objective truth. Both terms-phdosophy and rel!gzon-actually belong to a language game based on presuppositions not shared by Nagarjuna and Candrak.rrti.
5.4
Nondualistic knowledge
Wi~h the actualization of emptiness, manifest in wisdom as an effect, the bodhisattva gains access to the nondualistic knowledge of a buddha. It may be that this concept seems particularly abstruse because it is associated not so much with a way of knowing as with a way of being, for we have seen that the justification underlying claims to knowledge of this type is necessarily immersed in a certain form of life. The concept is, then, not so obscure as it first appears, since we can find ample evidence for a similar type of knowledge within the course of normal, everyday experience . In fact, a kind of nondualistic knowledge is present wher~ver a particular epistemic act is embedded in an intuitive awareness of the unique context through which two apparently discrete phenomena are intimately related, as is usually the case, for example, when we speak of a cause and its effect. And one's attention is again directed to the context of a relationship, only in a much more dramatic fashion, through the experience of a bodily sensation like pain. Here both the subject ("I") and the object ("pain") are undeniably present, yet the connection between them is so inextricably lodged in the broader context of their relations, including a wide spectrum of particular historical and situational factors, that this relationship is itself felt to be much more significant than the related subject and object. This is especially evident when the sensation is so overpowering that one feels "swallowed up" in the experience of intense pain or pleasure . The ontological-status of an internal object of sensation cannot be defined in' isolation from this network of circumstantial conditions. Moreover, the knowledge of such an object is incorrigible, and it is not normally articulated as a proposition to be assessed in terms of its truth or falsehood. 22 Feelings are mere appearance, and have no other reality than the reality manifest in their seeming. The same peculiar features are characteristic of a whole range of epistemic events that we see no need to explain, for example, acts of intention, expectation, and reme~bering, and assumptions of meaning and structure bound up with our most basic patterns of perception and communication. Clearly this sort of knowledge _ ~nderiies much, though not all, of everyday life, and it seems to serve as d ost for parasitic, rational, dichotomizing thought . The Madhyamika Oes not advocate any radically unconventional category of episte~~c _
.·--
CandrakTrti and Early Indian Mddhyamika
120
act, but rather a radically unconventional form of life, in which one is constantly and profoundly in touch with the holistic, contextual nature of all experience-with "the suchness of dependent origination." For the bodhisattva, rational, dualistic thinking no longer intrudes upon everyday experience, creating epistemological and ontological distinctions between feelings and so forth , on the one hand, and the mate· rial , physical world of objects, on the other. All experience is mere appearance and has no other reality than the reality manifest in how it seems not just to him, but to ::.11 sentient beings. In analyzing the con· tents of everyday experience, deconstructive criticism reveals this much and no more. What is false appearance for the average person bound to reified concepts is mere appearance for the bodhisattva, and mere appearance is all that there is to reality. One must learn not to lQok for truth and reality behind or under appearances, but to see both in the context of everyday life, where the soteriological truth of the highest meaning is understood by placing oneself in a harmonious relationship with these same appearances: "When the entities [taken for granted in the context of everyday experience] are examined, they ~re found to have no intrinsic distinguishing characteristic other than the mark of the reality [expressed in the truth of the highest meaning]. Therefore the conventional truth of everyday experience is not to be critically exam· ined." 23 "The master declared that all things are from the beginning at peace, devoid of production, and by virtue of their intrinsic nature , completely unentangled in suffering. " 24 The nature of this nondualistic knowledge can be hinted at through consideration of the Necker cube, an illustration that has been used in a number of critiques of positivist theories of perception:
'
~~
~I
'
Philosophy as Propaganda
~J~;
121
Is this a perspectival drawing of a cube from above, or from below? Perhaps it is something else entirely-a polygonally cut gem, or a twodimensional set of lines. One is tempted to say that it is all these things and more, but no amount of effort will allow us to see them simultaneously. Dualistic, conceptual thought influences perception in such a way that any of these possibilities can only be seen individually, as a self-sufficient , discrete image, but at .the same time we are aware of the intimate relations that obtain between the various figures in this drawing. According to the Madhyamika, a similar but much more convoluted and subtle relationship holds between any two dichotomies of conceptual thought, whether expressed in ontological, epistemological, ethical, or any other terms: Cause/effect, subject/object, substrate/predicate, absolute/relative, truth/error, good/evil, and all other dualistic concepts find their meaning in the context of their elusive relationship with each other and with an interrelated network of other such concepts. The structure that they give to all experience-a structure that seems "to emerge from the things themselves" -is also dependent on an illusion similar to the Necker cube , where each image finds its meaning and existence only in the context of its relationship to partners that must always remain out of sight. The critical difference is only that the context of everyday life in which these other relationships are embedded is infinitely more complex, for it embodies an indeterminate number of historical and circumstantial factors shared by the sociolinguistic community in which this vocabulary is used and thought and perception take place. Nevertheless, a cause can no more be detached from its effect than one image from the other, and neither can the "self' .be extracted from the context of its relar'ionship with the "others" that make up all of the sentient and insentient world . Moreover, just as there is no objective, neutral or uninterpreted image available to the subject viewing the drawing above, so it is pointless to refer our concepts and perceptions back to any a priori, uninterpreted ground. The nature of rational thought and perception is such that it necessarily focuses on one or the other aspect of any dichotomy, as though each was significant in and of itself, entirely apart from its hidden partners. Nondualistic knowledge derives from a noninferential awareness of the total context in which all experience is immersed, and through which it finds its meaning and reality. This context is the constantly fluctuating collocation of elements comprising one's whole form of life. It is necessarily recognized as a constantly fluctuating "state of affairs " and not as ~static "thing," so that once the attention is brought to bear unremittingly on the contextual nature of experience, the possibility of reified thought disappears. When we focus our attention on the total context of the Necker cube we still see either one figure or another, but we also see through them , for we do not see them as solitary, fragmented images
122
CandrakTrti and Early Indian Modhyamika
divorced from the context of their peculiar dependence on each other. The difference is one of attitude, for all else remains as it was.1 Similarly, when the bodhisattva cultivates nondualistic knowledge he both sees and sees through, the natural interpretations that structure his world. He sees nothing new or different, but he knows, directly and incorrigibly, that all the elements of experience are dependent upon one another and upon the nature of the perceiving consciousness in a very profound and significant way. This dramatic shift in attitude can only come about through mastery of a parti~i:ular training, entailing a correspondingly dramatic shift in one's form oflife. A buddha or a very advanced bodhisattva is deeply mindful of the relationship bttween himself and the world. He feels himself to be intimately involved with sentient beings andwith insentient things in a way that is analogous to the average person's felt relationship to the object of sensation, so that while subject and object are still present, with or without conscious reflection, their existence and meaning are totally subsumed by the nature of their relationship within a complex matrix of historical and situational criteria. Attention is here completely given over to the total context in which any experience occurs.
5.5
The bodhisattva's vow
What are the characteristics of the world as conceptualized by one who has actualized emptiness? More precisely: What is the bodhisattva's form of life, and what sort of responsibility does it entail? Like the structures of the inanimate world, all living beings have a dual nature. They are stationed at the crossroads of spirit and matter, sacred and profane, infinite and finite. Animate creatures are bound by the same necessity that governs every element of the inorganic universe. Just as any material body must respond to the pull of gravity, so, inasmuch as all living beings are born, they must also suffer disease, grow old, and die. This is the law of all creation. Here, for better or worse, we must live with a fundamental dichotomy that will forever maintain an opposition between the "I'" and the objects and forces ·perceived as external to it. At the same ~ime, however, within the teachings of Buddhism greater priority is given to another l('lw, the law of the Dharma, and according to the Madhyamika the workings of this law are revealed in the literature dealing with perfect wisdom (prajiiiipiiramitii) and emptiness. In their innermost nature living beings are entirely free from any of the categories and qualifications on which language and conceptual thought must depend. For the bodhisattva conventional truth is indistinguishable from the truth of emptiness. Reality simply is as it appears
Philosophy as Propaganda
123
-regardless of whether "it" appears as samsara or ni.rvai_la. The constant oscillation and interplay between these and other opposites is the interpenetrating nexus of dependent origination, experienced here in this world in the kaleidoscopic pattern of relations that makes up everyday life. This is what the Madhyamika means by insisting that the round of birth and death (samsara) is itself salvation (ni.rvat:ta). Obstinate clinging to the poles of any opposition as though they possessed independent, self-contained meaning or reality is associated with the most crippling form of spiritual ignorance, for just this clinging alienates us from the soteriological truth which must be found here in this world, and, according to Nagarjuna and Candraklrti, only here, at the crossroads of being and nothingness. It is an axiomatic principle of Candraklrti's text, and of all Madhyamika philosophy, that through immediate and uninterrupted awareness of the emptiness or "suchness" of everyday experience the bodhisattva finds liberation from suffering now-in this life and in this world. The bodhisattva is a being who has awakened to the emptiness of all things, and what is called the thought of awakening is the growing noninferential awareness of this profound dimension of freedom hidden in the inescapable web of our natural interpretations and associated obser- • vational languages. A bodhisattva recognizes that the objects and ' beings populating the world, and the concepts and percepts through which they and all possible experience ·take shape, do not possess selfcontained meaning or structure, and that everyday life is simply the totality of relations obtaining between these empty dichotomies. The bodhisattva moves with ease along the interface between soteriological and conventional truths. He finds total freedom in conformity to the unyielding necessity of knowledge grounded in mundane experience, and the consummate expression of this freedom is his deep spontaneous commitment to action in accord with his compassion for the myriad empty beings suffering in an empty world: One who has set out on the career of a bodhisattva should reflect in the following way: '' However many living beings there are gathered together in the univer~ of beings-egg-born, or born from an embryo, or moisture-born, or miraculously born, with or without form, with ideation, without ideation, with neither ideation nor nonideation-to whatever extent a universe of beings can be designated-all these must be led to release from suffering, to the realm ofnirval)a which leaves no remainder." Yet although an infinite number of beings may thus be led to nirvaQa, no being at all is ever led to nirvaQa. And why is this? If in a bodhisattva the idea of a "being" should occur, then he would r.ot be called a bodhisattva. He is not to be called a bodhisattva in whom the idea of a being should occur or the idea of a sentient creature, or the idea of a real person. 25
124
CandrakTrti and Early Indian Madhyamika
The Madhyamika's claim that suffering can be somehow mitigated or completely transformed by following the bodhisattva's path is an issue concerning which, from our point of view, no totally convincing justification is likely to be forthcoming. But we may at least come to appreciate just how the central concepts of the literature are integrally aligned with the concept of pain as a context-bound experience. The pain of any individual, or his release from that pain, has no sort of transcendental reference. Although its effect can be transforming, suffering itself is always experienced as mundane fact. The force of pain or grief acts in a very dramatic way to ground the individual in the concerns of the present moment, yet at the same time suffering is in every instance contingent on the entire web of relations that forms the warp and woof of the dependently originated, empty world. For the Madhyamika this is a matter of tremendous import because it leaves open the possibility that even the experience of physical pain could be altered and invested with a radically different significance by fundamentally altering one's form oflife. Any experience, whether it involves perception of an external, physical object or awareness of a thought or feeling, is always intimately bound up with the quality of its perceiving consciousness . The innermost nature of both consciousness and its objects is therefore invariably a function of this relationship, so that nothing-neither mind ·itself nor any conceptual or perceptual object-is independently real, fixed, or inalterable. All elements or'experience are fluid, dynamic, and constantly evolving in such a way as to reflect the interaction between consciousness and its objects. And within this interaction, where every aspect of experience is deeply conditioned by a network of natural interpretations that are themselves ungrounded and totally subject to historical and circumstantial conditioning, there lies an unlimited potential for growth and transformation . 26
5.6
Universal compassion, nonclinging, and emptiness
The bodhisattva's universal compassion is both the highest expression of nonclinging and the living instantiation of the philosophical matrix in which it is cast . Without understanding the relationship of compassion, nonclinging, and emptiness, one cannot appreciate the meaning of Nagarjuna's thought or the true significance of Mahayana Buddhism. The Madhyamika's soteriological philosophy focuses attention directly on the problem of context and relation, dramatically manifest in our need to think and act in harmony with each other and with the rest of the sentient and insentient world in which we live. 27 The primary
Philosophy as Propaganda
125
place this problem holds in the literature signals an unqualified rejection of the usual concern of philosophy with ideas in and for themselves. Such a rejection parallels the turn made by "edifying" philosophers like Wittgenstein, Heidegger, and Dewey away from the rationalistic/idealistic tradition which had preceded them. In Rorty's words, "Edifying philosophers [aim] to help their readers, or society as a whole, break free from outworn vocabularies and attitudes, rather than to provide 'grounding' for the intuitions and customs of the present." 28 For the Madhyamika, no matter how powerful or compelling they are, concepts are to be handled with the same measure of respect and caution given a useful but dangerous tool. One must be especially careful with the concepts of dependent origination and emptiness, however, which should have the single purpose of turning one's attention away from notions of "I" and "mine" and toward the community, including all sentient beings. The focus on context and relation reflects the fact that one necessarily stands in a sociolinguistic community, and that it is both irrational and spiritually fatal not to align oneself with the best interests of the community as a whole. To act and speak at all is to act and speak in the context of the community. Most important, self-knowledge is nothing other than knowledge of one's role in the world community. There is no truly independent "self' which can be stifled by others, for outside this complex web of relations there is no self at all. 29 Therefore, to assume full responsibility for all sentient beings is to realize the highest truth and the deepest meaning of the self. No longer dominated by reified concepts of "I" and "mine," the bodhisattva is directly, noninferentially aware of the world as nothing more than a constantly changing pattern of relationships. He is then firmly rooted, for the first time, in the contextual reality of everyday experience and the concerns most relevant to life in this world. And what could possibly be of greater practical concern to us all than the problem of fear and suffering, which cannot be denied or thrust away by any effort to gratify the individual self? Stanley Cavell makes the following observation on philosophical notions of "liberation": "Recognizing what we say, in the way that is relevant in philosophizing, is like recognizing our present commitments and their implications; to one person a sense of freedom will demand an escape from them, to another it will require their more total acceptance."30 The literature which expounds the soteriological philosophy of the Madhyamika is quite clearly designed to make propaganda for a concept of freedom as "the more total acceptance of our present commitments and their implications." Although deconstructive analysis removes every possible basis for clinging, antipathy, and the delusion of reified thought, still it must be considered propaganda because the Madhyamika cannot assert any absolutely authoritative, objectively
126
CandrakTrti and Early Indian Madhyamika
valid grounds for justification of the form of life manifest in the bodhisattva ideal. All the rhetoric (which, taken as a whole, is internally inconsistent) is aimed toward gradually convincing us that freedom is to be found in the Buddhist way of life. But such conviction must ultimately give way to training and practice. Philosophy as a methodological exercise in pure rationalism (a sophisticated version of ostensive definition) is incapable of providing an objective foundation for this way of life or any transcendental justification for the ethical ideals of the Buddhist. The rationalist component of the Madhyamika is merely one of a wide range of propagandistic devices referred to, generically, as "skillful means"; yet the tremendous significance of this fact can easily be underestimated or forgotten when the arguments of the Madhyamika are divorced, even for the purposes of a "specialized analysis," from the tradition of ritual practice and meditation. The problem is a particularly thorny one, since abject refusal to comply with the vocabulary and propositional structure of epistemologically oriented philosophy cannot but appear highly suspect in a community of intellectuals steeped in the tradition that proceeded from Descartes through Locke and Kant to where it presently endows the scientific, rational world view with its exclusive right to all adjudication in matters of meaning and structure. A number of modern studies demonstrate an awareness-of the difficulties involved, and several commentators have begun to recognize this propagandistic element in the Madhyamika's approach to language and conceptual thought. But so far no one seems to have remarked that the Prasarigika technique is paralleled in the work of modern pragmatist and deconstructive philosophers. When efforts to force Nagarjuna's work into a neo-Kantian mold fail, as they must, talk almost invariably turns in equally unpromising directions, suggesting that the Miidhyamika is not to be read as philosophy after all, and thus cannot be properly judged by "philosophical" standards. We are told, for example, that Nagiirjuna "had no interest at all in 'objectivity' as Western philosophers define that word." 31 This sort of comment could be made only by someone who has not given adequate consideration to the writings of James, Gadamer, Wittgenstein, and all the others whose work I have been referring to at intervals throughout these pages. This is the sort of confusion we can continue to expect when the best scholars of Buddhist literature isolate themselves behind the walls of a discipline that is defined almost exclusively in terms of a philologically based methodology. Clearly, the concept of objectivity is no longer taken for granted in intellectual circles, and Western philosophers are at present far from reaching any consensus as to its meaning and implications as a method· ological strategy. It is therefore important to see how this same article'! central thesis, that Niigarjuna's thought is essentially mystical and con·
Philosophy as Propaganda
127
sequently not "philosophically cogent," 32 is unacceptable, primarily because it rests on a number of arbitrary and unexamined premises concerning the nature and task of the sort of enterprise which properly deserves the title "philosophy." 33 For more than half a century now, philosophy has been construed in ways that altogether avoid the problem of objectivity-ways in which the issue of "reason" versus "mysticism" no longer means what it did to the tradition that rotated on the Descartes-Locke-Kant axis: [The epistemologically centered philosopher] wants to be constrained not merely by the disciplines of the day, but by the ahistorical and nonhuman nature of reality itself. This impulse takes two forms-the original Platonic strategy of postulating novel objects for treasured propositions to correspond to, and the Kantian strategy of finding principles which are definatory of the essence of knowledge, or representation , or morality, or rationality. But this difference is unimportant compared to the common urge to escape the vocabulary and practices of one's own time and find something ahistorical and necessary to cling to. It is the urge to answer questions like "Why believe what I take to be true?" "Why do what I take to be right?" by appealing to something more than the ordinary, retail, detailed, concrete reasons which have brought one to one's present view. This urge is common to nineteenth-century idealists and contemporary scientific realists, to Russell and to Husser!; it is definatory of the Western philosophical tradition, and of the culture for which that tradition speaks. James and Dewey stand with Nietzsche and Heidegger in asking us to abandon that tradition, and that culture.'*
If the linguistic interpretation has any force, then we must assume that Nagarjuna would himself have seen any philosophical project whatsoever as either inherently dissociated from the real, day-to-day concerns of human activities (and hence meaningless and insignificant), or propagandistic in the sense just defined . It is to the Madhyamika's credit and to the credit of more than one modern Western philosopher, that they have not attempted to escape from the ramifications of this admittedly disconcerting "view that is no view." This realization that all significant philosophical enterprises necessarily function as intellectual propaganda most clearly distinguishes the writings of these philosophers from those of their colleagues both in the East and in the West. NXGARJUNA: We contend that you do not know the application ('purpose' or 'use,' prayojana) of emptiness ... and therefore you are lost. 35 WITTGENSTEIN: I am in a sense making propaganda for one style of thinking as opposed to another. I am honestly disgusted with the other. . . . Much of what I am doing is persuading the people to change their style ofthinking.3 6
128
CandrakTrti and Early Indian Miidhyamika
The characterization of philosophy as propaganda is valuable because it stands in dramatic defiance of all attempts to hypostatize this or that definition of "philosophical cogency." It acts as a barometer to gauge one's attachment to the concept of philosophy as a search for eternally sanctified, ahistorical, inalterable truth(s) to be attai~d through the proper application of an approved methodology. Insofar as the notion of philosophy as propaganda precludes gratification of the desire to fall back on unexamined presuppositions about what constitutes a legitimate philosophical problem, it insures that the Madhyamika's holistic, contextual approach to meaning and existence as functions of relation will not be misinterpreted, either as a species of non philosophical mysticism or as what Alvin Gouldner calls a "classic" theory of objective truth. Both those interpretations are examples of extremes that for dichotomous, reified thought seem the only available alternatives. Let us take a closer look at the notion of philosophical objectivity, for it harbors a number of ambivalent meanings relevant to the present discussion. As mentioned above, Gouldner has investigated the anachronistic, although highly treasured and virtually inextinguishable, concept of truth as a quest for value-free objectivity: The classical, older notion of objectivity stressed that truth was the product of applying specific methods to particular intellectual tasks and data. Its focal assumption was that truth was produced essentially by an individual scholar and the approved method. But what grounds were there for a confidence in the scholar's motives for conformity to the right method? What was defocalized here was the social aspect of the process: namely, that the scholar as a scholar was the product of a social system that had trained and awarded him his credentials; that as a mature scholar he worked as a member of a scholarly community; that he had to convince its members of the warrantability of his assertions, and that he sought to do so by employing the rules, methods and criteria that his community sanctioned, as a rhetoric. 37
The Madhyamika quite clearly recognizes no possibility of "objective truth" defined in these terms, but it does not follow that the literature is not and cannot be philosophically cogent. In contrast to the classical notion, Gouldner defines an- alternative concept of truth as a fluid, dynamic process of theory formation. This "modern" view of truth avoids the pitfalls of hypostatized categories through its responsiveness to the varying demands of social and linguistic conve]ltions: "The modern view then, sees truth as the product of a rhetoric and collective appraisal of the warrantability of assertions about the social world, as < world-referencing judgement that is collectively construed and whid
Philosophy as Propaganda
129
does not have an unmediated availability, either as subjective 'intuition' or as objective 'evidence.' " 38 This second "view" of truth is compatible with the Madhyamika'! rejection of all views, for both Candrakirti and Gouldner agree in principle that "things claimed may be factually so, and statements made may be logically and factually correct; but that is not necessarily 'truth. ' For the sociology of cognition truth comes down to the perspectives by which even logically and factually correct propositions may be limited . Truth has to do with the limits of reason." 39 Elsewhere in the same arti· de Gouldner works out a concept of "new objectivity," which deserve! to be appropriated as a hermeneutic for appreciating the Madhyamika'! deconstructive philosophy as a particular instantiation of "skillful means " -a corrective or cure for deep-rooted obsessions with any possi· ble picture of the world. As with any medicine, the prescription must be adapted to the specific symptoms of the patient-that is, to his own sys· temic peculiarities, which stem, in this case, from the natural interpre· tations and related observational languages that condition his entin form of life-and to the general pathology of reified thought: "Objectivity," then, is not neutrality; it is realism concerning our own situation, desires and interests. Here "realism" means being aware of the continual vulnerability of reason to interest and desire, of the limits that interest and desire impose on rational discourse. Objectivity, then, is a wholeness paradoxically pursued by stressing insistently and one-sidedly the repressed and silenced side of things. It is the effort to overcome the varied and changing limitations of persons and groups through recovery of what their lives have systemically repressed, distorted, and lost. 40
The Madhyamika could be understood in terms of this "new objectivity," but it is misleading to characterize Nagarjuna and Candrakirti as the proponents of a mystical, alogical, or irrational system unconcerned with the proper business of philosophy, namely, the search for objective truth conceived in what Gouldner identifies as its classical formulation . Such an interpretation does a tremendous disservice to Nagarjuna 's thought . It fails to engage with the profound and disturbing challenge issued by this ancient Buddhist philosopher. Without a doubt, the single most controversial and revolutionary feature of Nagarjuna's legacy lies in his restructuring of the philosophical enterprise so as entirely to discredit the quest for value-free, ahistorical verities supposed to reflect a similarly transcendental reality. In pursuing the analysis this far, Nagarjuna and his successors were simply working out the further consequences of the earlier Buddhist doctrine of selflessness (nairiitmya), which had already begun the pro~ess of deconstruction
130
CandrakTrti and Early Indian Miidhyamika
that reached its climax in the scriptures dealing with perfect wisdom
(prajno.piiramitiisutras). Although it arose out of a culture remote from our own and was harnessed to the soteriological interests of Indian philosophy, the Madhyamika's critique seems to have anticipated many of the concerns of twentieth-century philosophers rebelling against the established authority of neo-Kantian scientific rationalism. Consider, for example, what Rorty characterizes as the "existentialist" view of objectivity: Objectivity should be seen as conformity to the norms of justification (for assertions and for actions) we find about us. Such conformity becomes dubious and self-deceptive only when seen as something more than thisnamely, as a way of obtaining access to something which "grounds" current practices of justification in something else. Such a "ground" is thought to need no justification, because it has become so clearly and distinctly perceived as to count as a "philosophical foundation." This is self-deceptive not simply because of the general absurdity of thinking that the vocabulary used by present science, morality, or whatever has some privileged attachment to reality which makes it more than just a further set of descriptions. Agreeing with the naturalists that redescription is not "change of essence" needs to be followed up by abandoning the notion of "essence" altogether." In the modern struggle to escape from our deep attachment to the notion of essence we find a powerful heuristic for Nagarjuna's rejection of all philosophical views: "Those who see in it [any reference to] intrinsic and extrinsic being, or existence and nonexistence, do not see the actual teaching of the buddha." 42 This denial of the concept of essence can best be appreciated by .contrasting the antiphilosophicallanguage of the Madhyamika with a modern statement of epistemological monism analogous to the one presented in the Vedantic view of a nondual, transcendental reality. Mark C. Taylor develops such a view of truth and existence as functions of relation and context which is reminiscent of the complexity attained by pre-Copernican models of the-solar system constructed in an attempt to accommodate the mounting pressure for an altogether new observational language. In his densely worded essay we can feel the tension involved in Taylor's effort to hold onto the presuppositions and the vocabulary of the epistemological problematic against the onslaught of deconstructive, pragmatic philosophy and philosophical hermeneutics:43 Epistemological and semantic considerations s~gest the perspectival relativity of truth. The historicity of consciousne~s establishes the inescap-
Philosophy as Propaganda able situatedness of the knowing subject. Cognitive activity arises through the confluence of multiple conditioning factors, and issues in knowledge that invariably bears the mark of the situation within which it is generated. Moreover, we have seen that meaning is contextual. Meaning remains unspecifiable apart from dialogic relation with alternative points of view. The synchronic and diachronic extensiveness of such relationality implies that meaning is inexhaustible and ever revisable. Consequently the meaningfulness of truth necessarily entails dialectical relation with contrasting frames of interpretation and !s constantly subject tore-formation . Truth emerges only through the synchronic and diachronic interplay of truths . In sum, truth is relative to the perspective from which it is apprehended and is co-relative with implicated truths whose reciprocity it presupposes. The relativity of the ordo cognoscendi, however, does not necessarily distort the ordo essendi. To the contrary, the relationality of being is accurately comprehended only in truth that is relative. Like thought, being is inherently dialectical. In other words, that which thought seeks to grasp is itself relative. As a result of the sociality of being, determinate identity assumes concretion through internal relation with difference. Particular phenomena are posited by an extensive mutual interaction that forms a single complex web. Our ontological investigation has shown the' synchronic and diachronic coordinates of constitutive relationality. Determinate identity is established through association with coexisting entities and through location within temporal process. Due to the historical unfolding of multiple ingredient relations, being is always in the process of becoming. Dynamic, dialectical actuality cannot be re-presented in static, sharply delineated categories of cognition. If such being is to be known, it. must be grasped relative to otherness from which it is inseparable, and must be regularly re-constructed as it re-constructs. As an adequate reflection of the energetics of being, truth changes-it requires constant re-visioning. 44 This article is especially useful for our present purposes because it constitutes "an attempt to demonstrate that relativism is mandated both epistemologically and ontologically." 45 Taylor has done everything possible to stretch the neo-Kantian paradrgm and adapt it to a vision of truth and reality not ·susceptible to reiflcation, and yet, in retaining what Rorty calls "the ocular metaphor,'·' he is ultimately compelled to ground his philosophical view in references to an ahistorical, essentially rn~taphysical epistemology. This is explicit from the beginning, when he W~ttes, "As the argument unfolds, it will become apparent that the only th~ng that is not relative is relativity itself." 46 Taylor's concept of nonrela~tve relativity is particularly instructive for us because it stands in dt~ect contrast, forming a sort of minimal pair, to Nagarjuna 1s ·complete r:Jection of the ocular metaphor. The Madhyamika's total deconstruction of even its own key concepts is epitomized in "the emptiness of
132
CandrakTrti and Early Indian MadhyamikCJ
emptiness" (fiinyatiifunyatii)-a self-deconstructing concept that throws into relief many difficult and controversial passages that are incommensurable with the Vediintic or Kantian language game and simply cannot be interpreted according to its rules. 47 The conceptual system of the Miidhyamika has been characterized as philosophical propaganda in order to stress this crucial point of the emptiness of emptiness, which provides no a priLri justification for a~ view or belief. As I have attempted to demonstrate in a number of ways over the course of the preceding pages, the difficulties of coming tc terms with such a doctrine cannot be resolved strictly by recourse tc extended critical discussion. Indeed, intellectual resistance to this seem· ingly unrelieved relativism assumes various and subtle forms, even among those most inclined to accept the premises and the aim ofNagiirjuna's soteriological philosophy. 48 Fears of relativism and irrationality need to be seen in this light as stemming from a failure of imagination, for once they are understood as such we can entirely break free of both the problem and its various solutions. The extremes of nihilism and epistemological monism find a parallel in the phenomenon described by Kuhn and Feyerabend in their discussions of incommensurablility, where large segments of the scientific community-the practitioners of "normal science"-are left behind during times of revolutionary change to such an extent that they do not even realize that a revolution has occurred. Resistance to a new language game is signaled either by a vain effort to make do with the old terminology, as with Taylor and so many modern scholars who rely on the vocabulary of rationalistic/idealistic methodologies to interpret the Miidhyamika, or else by accusing those who insist on not participating in the normal conversation of relativism am irrationality, as has been done by the proponents of the nihihstic inter pretation. 49 In both cases we detect a response to the problem of in com mensurability, since these resistances "oppose not just the truth of th< resisted alternatives but the presumption that an alternative has beer presented." Only by seeing these accusations in this way can we escap< to something completely new. "Relativism" only seems to refer to a disturbing view, worthy of being refuted, if it concerns real theories, not just philosophical theories. Nobody really cares if there are incompatible alternative formulations of a categorical imperative, or incompatible sets Qf categorien>f the pure understanding. We do car~ about alternative, concrete, detailed cosmologies, or alternative, concrete, detailed proposals for political change. When such an alternative is proposed, we debate it, not in terms of categories or principles but in terms of the various concrete advantages and disadvantages it
Philosophy as Propaganda
133
has. The reason relativism is talked about so much among Platonic and Kantian philosophers is that they think being relativistic about philosophical theories-attempts to "ground" first-level theories-leads to being relativistic about the first-level theories themselves. If anyone really believed that the worth of a theory depends upon the worth of its philosophical grounding, then indeed they would be dubious about physics, or democracy, until relativism 1n respect to philosophical theories had been overcome. Fortunately, almost nobody believes anything of the sort. 50 To address the philosophical problem of irrationalism in connection with the Madhyamika, we must first understand what the accusation of irrationalism means in the context of its historical roots in our own intellectual tradition. Only then will we appreciate the difficulties that must be overcome in order to present this remote literature as an interesting and coge nt contribution to the conversation of modern Western philosophers. Questions about irrationalism have become acute in our century because the sullen resentment which sins against Socrates, which withdraws from conversation and community, has recently become articulate. Our European intellectual tradition is now abused as "merely conceptual" or "merely ontic" or as "committed to abstractions." Irrationalists propose such rubbishy pseudo-epistemological notions as "intuition" or "an inarticulate sense or tradition" or "thinking with the blood" or "expressing the will of the oppressed classes'' Our tyrants and ba.ndits are more hateful than those of earli~r times because, invoking such self-deceptive rhetoric, they pose as intellectuals. Our tyrants write philosophy in the morning and torture in the afternoon; our bandits alternately read Holderlin and bomb people into bloody scraps. So our culture clings, more than ever, to the hope of the Enlightenment, the hope that drove Kant to make philosophy formal and rigorous and .professional. We hope that by formulating the right conceptions of reason, of science, of thought, of knowledge, of morality, the conceptions which express their essence, we shall have a shield against irrationalist resentment and hatred . . . . For the traditional, Platonic or Kantian philosopher . . . the possibility of grounding the European form of life-of showing it to be more than European, more than a contingent human project-seems the central task of philosophy. He wants to show that sinning against Socrates is sinning against our nature , not just against our community. So he sees the pragmatist as an irrationalist. The charge that pragmatism is "relativistic" is simply his first unthinking expression of disgust at a teaching which seems cynical about our deepes t hopes . . . . [The pragmatist] seems to be sacrificing our common European proj-::ct to. the delights of purely negative criticism. 51 . I have not referred again and again to the writings of deconstructiOnist and pragmatic philosophers because I believe that these modination of self-production and production from another: The third alternative]
(98) Production from both is also patently unreasonable, because the faults already explained also accrue to this [thesis]. Neither [self-] pro-
The Directly Facing
169
duction nor production from [another] has been proven, and this [third alternative] is unacceptable both from the perspective of the truth [of the highest meaning] and within the context of everyday experience. [Production unassociated with any causal factor: The fourth alternative]
)l :!
(99) If production is believed to take place only in the absence of a cause, then it follows that anything could be produced anywhere at any time, and hundreds of thousands of seeds sown by common people for the purpose of raising crops would result in no harvest whatsoever. 125 (100) 126 If the world were devoid of any cause [for its existence], then like the color or scent of a lotus growing in midair, surely it would not · be apprehended as existent. On the contrary, the world is apprehended in all its rich variety, and therefore it must be acknowledged that exactly as is the case with our own cognition [of the world}, the world is itself [produced] from causes. (101) The primary material elements are not characterized by any "self" like the one that serves as the object of your [misleading] cognition; and when one's mind is enveloped with an impenetrable darkness with respect to everyday experience in this life, how can he accurately comprehend the next life? 127 ( 102) Negation of the possibility of an afterlife implies the presence of a mistaken belief in the self as a quality of intrinsic being, which is then attributed to the object ofknowledge. 128 This is so because, in this case, (belief in the ultimate reality of the material elements of] the body and belief [in the self as a quality of intrinsic being] both derive from the same source. 129 ( 103) 130 We have by now accounted for the way in which the material elements do not exist, insofar as the preceding discussion constitutes a· general refutation of production-whether it is self-production, production from another, production from both or from neither. It is clear that the elements do not exist, even though they were not specifically mentioned. [Summary of the refutation of intrinsic being]
I
( 104) 131 Entities are devoid of intrinsic being because there is no production either from self, from another, from both, or in the absence of any cause. Yet these objects assume a false appearance, because the world is covered over with the fog of a profound delusion . 132 (105) 133 Under the influence of ophthalmia one mistakenly perceives hair, a double moon, the eyes on a peacock's tail, or flies. In a similar way, when the mind has fallen under the influence of the problem of
170
The Entry into the Middle Woy
delusion, a naive person develops reified concepts in association with all manner of composite things. (106) Without a doubt, naive people ought to be aware that volitional action finds its source in delusion, so that when delusion is eliminated, such action does not take place. The wise comprehend emptiness and are liberated, for they have burned away this thick cloud of delusion with the sun oftheir noble minds. m ( 107) [Objection J If in the reality [expressed in the truth of the highest meaning] things did not exist, then like the son of a barren woman they would be nonexistent conventionally as well. [They do exist conventionally, however, and] therefore they must exist by virtue of their intrinsic being (svabhiivena). (108) [Response] This objection of yours should be raised, for now, with reference to those who are affiicted with ophthalmia, since the objects like hair which appear to such people are [conventionally] unproduced. After [this phenomenon has been properly explained], voice your objection with reference to those who are affiicted with the ophthalmia of spiritual ignorance. 135 (109) One perceives dreams, fairy cities, mirages of water, magic, reflected images, and so forth, which are unproduced, and yet according to our opponent it is unreasonable that such things could appear as they do, since [on his view] they are no different from that which does not exist [in any sense whatsoever] (as, e.g., the son of a barren woman). 136
(110) [According to the Priisangika, however,] even though [things] are not in reality produced, unlike the son\of a barren woman they do serve as objects that are perceived in the context of everyday experience, and on this account, your argument is inconclusive. 137 ( 111) The son of a barren woman is not produced in and of itself (sviitmata!t) either in the reality [expressed in the truth of the highest meaning] or in the context of everyday experience. Likewise, all things are unproduced in and of themselves (svariipena) both in this higher reality and in the world. 138 ( 112) Therefore the master declared that all things are from the beginning at peace, devoid of production and, by virtue of their intrinsic nature, completely unentangled in suffering: 139 There is no production.140 (113) A jug, for example, does not exist in the reality [expressed in the truth of the highest meaning], and yet it is taken for granted in the context of everyday experience. All entities are alike in this way; therefore one may not conclude that they are equivalent to the son of a barren woman. 141 ( 114) Entities are not produced without a cause, and not from causes
1
A
The Directly Facing
171
like "God," for example, [which are nothing more than reified concepts] . Nor are they produced from out of themselves, nor from another, nor from both [self and other). They are produced in mutual dependence. (115) Reified concepts cannot stand up under analysis simply because entities are produced in mutual dependence. The logic of dependent origination rips to shreds the net of philosophical views. (116) If entities did [intrinsically] exist, then reified concepts would be in order. [However,) upon critical investigation the entity as such proves to be nonexistent, and in the absence of an [intrinsically existent] entity, these reified concepts are inappropriate. 142 There will be no fire in the absence of fuel.
[Refutation of the intrinsically existent person (pudgalanoiriitmya) Introduction] .A
+
( 117)U3 Common people are tightly bound by these reified concepts, while the meditator who does not produce such ideas obtains liberation. Wise men have declared that analysis 144 results in the termination of reified concepts. (118) The analysis in the [Madhyamaka]ftiftra is not conducted out of fondness for debate-it teaches about the reality (expressed in the truth of the highest meaning] for the purpose of liberation. If in the course of these teachings on reality other philosophical systems are destroyed, this cannot be construed as a fault (ofthe Madhyamika]. (119) Attachment to one's own philosophical view and aversion to the view of' another is itself evidence of reified thinking. When one sets aside attachment and aversion and analyzes [all views], he will quickly find liberation. ( 120) 145 Through insight the meditator realizes that all afflictions and misfortunes are associated with the philosophical view of a real, substantial "I" (satkiiyadr~.ti), 146 and once he has identified the self (iitman) as the focal point of this view, he uproots [the reified concept of] self. ( 121 )w The self as concptualized by non-Buddhist philosophers is eternal, inactive, without qualities, a nonagent, and the partaker [of all objects of knowledge]. The systems of these non-Buddhists are distinguished according to the various characteristics that they have attributed to this [self]. (122) A self like this simply does not exist, for it is no more produced than is the son of a barren woman . Moreover, it makes no sense that it should serve as the basis for clinging to an "I": We do not consider it to exist even from the perspective of the [truth of the] screen. 148 (123) Our well-known arguments concerning nonproduction con-
172
The Entry into the Middle Way
trovert every one of the characteristics that these non-Buddhist philosophers teach about in their texts. Not one of them is feasible.
[Refutation of the self as different from the psychophysical aggregates 1 (124) Therefore there is no self different from the psychophysical aggregates, for apart from the aggregates it cannot be established. Nor is it considered to be the cognitive basis for clinging to an "I," which is a part of everyday experience. This philosophical view of a self is unreasonable.u9 ( 125) Even those who have wandered for eons [spending lifetime after lifetime] as animals do not perceive this eternal, unborn [self], yet we can see that they still cling to an "I." On this account, there is no self different from the aggregates. 150
[Refutation of the self as identical to the psychophysical aggregates 1 ( 126) Because the self is not established as different from the aggregates, some consider the basis of the philosophical view of a self to be the aggregates themselves, some consider [the basis of] the philosophical view of a self to be a part of the aggregates, and some take it to be only [the single aggregate of] mind. (127) 151 If the self is the psychophysical aggregates, then there would have to be a plurality of selves, since there is a plurality of aggregates. 152 In this case the self would be a [conventionally] real substance, and [cognition] with reference to such a real substance could not be erroneous.153 (128) 154 However, at the moment of realizing nirval)a, such a self would certainly be annihilated,' 55 and prior to [the realization of] nirvaJ:!a it would be produced and destroyed from moment to moment. It follows that the agent would be destroyed, therl}would be no retribution for him, and one [self] would therefore partake of [the retribution for] volitional action accomplished by another. 156 (129) If [our opponent should presume that] this fallacy does not apply, for in reality there is a continuum [in which the separate moments of the self subsist], then [he is referred to~ the previous analysis, wherein the fallacies implicit in [this notion of] a continuum have already been explained. Furthermore, it is unreasonable that the psychophysical aggregates or the mind should be the self, because it would be wrong to assert that everyday experience, [which is only the aggregates,] is subject to extinction. 157 (130) If what our opponent suggests is indeed the case, then it would
The Directly Facing
173
follow that at the moment when the meditator realizes the absence of an [ultimately real] self, [all conventionally real] things as well would certainly [be perceived as totally] nonexistent. l(in defense of this position we assume that he has abandoned [only the concept of) the eternal self, then in that event the self could not be mind or the psychophysical aggregates. 158 ( 131) The meditator who realized the absence of a self [simply as the nonexistence of an eternal self) would not comprehend the reality of form and the other [aggregates as expressed in the truth of the highest meaning]. On this account, clinging and the other [affiictions] would still be produced, for they arise through the [mis ]apprehension of form, and he would not have comprehended the nature(= emptiness) of form [and the other aggregates]. 159 (132) If [our opponent] considers the self to be the psychophysical aggregates because the master taught that "the aggregates are the self," [then he should be made aware that] this is simply [to be construed as] a refutation of the self as something different from the aggregates. In other siitras it was taught that the self is not form [or any of the other aggregates].l 60 · (133) In another siitra it is stated that the self is neither form (riipa) nor feeling (vedanii), nor apperception (samjiiii), nor the prenatal dispositions (samskiiras), nor consciousness (vy"iiiina). Therefore one cannot assert that the siitra defines the self as [identical to] the psychophysical aggregates. 161 [Refutation of the self as the composite of all five psychophysical aggregates 1
(134) [Objection] When [the siitra] maintains that the self is the aggregates, this is a reference to [the composite of all] the aggregates, and not to the essence of[ any individual] aggregate.l 62 [Response] [The composite] is not the protector, nor the one to be subdued, nor the witness, and therefore the [self) is not the composite. 163 ( 135) The self is similar to a carriage, and the quality of being a carriage derives from the assembled composite of its parts . However, in the siitras it is said that the self is merely dependent on the aggregates, and on this account the self is not to be directly equated with the composite of the aggregates. 164 [Refutation of the self as equivalent to the body1
(136) If one asserts that [the self) is analogous to the shape (samsthiina) [of the assembled carriage parts], then the implication is that the self
__,..,.
I 174
The Entry into the Middle Way
would simply be "form" (riipa), because only form is associated with shape. The other [aggregates] like mind, for example, could not be equated with the self, since they are not associated with any shape. (137) It is inherently unreasonable that the appropriator and the appropriated substratum are'identical,for if this were the case, then the "object of action" 165 and the "agent" wiruld be identical as well. 166 And if, on the other hand, one imagines that action can take place in the absence of any agent, then [we must take issue with this unwarranted assumption ]-this is certainly not the case. There is no action in the absence of an agent. 16 7
[Summary of the preceding arguments] (138) The sage taught that the self is dependent on the six elements: earth, water, fire, wind, consciousness, and space; and on the six faculties (sparfiiyatanas): vision, and so forth [including conceptualization as the sixth]. (139) F"tlrthermore, he taught that the mind (or thought: citta) and its component features (cittadharmas) support [the self]. Therefore [the self] is not [the individual elements], nor is it any one of them taken separately, nor is it actually the composite-and for this reason the cognitive basis of clinging to an "I" cannot be [a self defined in any such terms]. 168 ( 140) [Let us suppose for the moment that] when the absence of a self is understood, [this simply entails] a rejection of this "eternal self." But this [reified concept of an eternally existent self] is not considered to be the basis of the clinging to an "I," and therefore why would the philosophical view of a real, substantial self be uprooted by understanding the absence of a self [in this manner]? Such a proposition would be marvelous indeed! (141) 169 [It is as if] someone were to see that a serpent had taken up residence in a hole in the wall of his home. He proceeds to assure himself that there is no elephant in the house, and by doing so, he manages not only to dispose of his fear [for the imaginary elephant], but he also rids himself of any apprehension for the serpent! Indeed, our opponent is strikingly naive [if he would hold such a position]. ( 142) 170 The self does not exist in the psychophysical aggregates, and the aggregates do not exist in the self. If there were any difference [between the self and the aggregates], then such reified concepts would be plausible; but because no such difference exists, these are nothing but reified concepts [with no possible application] . 171 (143) 172 The self is not considered to possess form because the self does not exist, and therefore there can be no question of a genitive relationship. [The genitive applies if] there is a difference [between posses-
.........\
The Directly Facing
175
sor and possessed] as, for example, [in the statement] "[Devadatta] possesses a cow." Or [it also applies] where there is no difference as, for instance, [in the statement] "[Devadatta] possesses a body (riipa)." The self, however, is neither different from nor identical with form. 173 ( 144) 174 The self is not form, nor does the self possess form. The self is not "in" form, and form is not "in" the self. All [five] aggregates are to be understood according to just these four alternatives: [The cumulative total of permutations] is regarded as a composite of the twenty aspects of the philosophical view of a self (iitmo.dnti). 175 (145) 176 These [aspects] are the towering peaks situated on the enormous mountain of the philosophical view of a real, substantial "I." They and the self are shattered and completely destroyed by the lightning bolt of the comprehension of selflessness.
[Refutation of the self as an inexpressible yet real substance] (146) There are those 177 who consider the person to exist as a real substance, yet they cannot say whether it is identical to or different from [the aggregates], permanent or impermanent, or anything else. Furthermore, they consider it to Qe an object of knowledge for the sixth (mental) cognition, 178 and as such, the basis for clinging to an "1." 179 ( 14 7) [The difference or identity of] mind with respect to form is not . conceived of as inexpressible, and in fact, no existing thing (vastusat) is considered inexpressible. It follows that if the self is an established entity, then, like "mind," which is [also] an established entity, [its difference or identity with respect to the psychophysical aggregates] would not be inexpressible. ( 148) According to our opponent, a jug is not by nature an established entity precisely because [its difference or identity] with respect to form, for example, is inexpressible. Likewise, the relationship of the self to the psychophysical aggregates is also inexpressible, and therefore one ought not conceive of the self as intrinsically existent. 180 (149) Once again according to our opponent, consciousness is not considered different from itself, but it is taken to be an entity different from form [and the other aggregates]. These two aspects [of identity and difference] are perceived in association with any entity, and because they do not apply to the self, this self does not exist.
[The self is compared to a carriage cognized in dependence on its parts] (150) Consequently, the basis of clinging to an "I" is not an entity. It is not different from the psychophysical aggregates, it is not the essence of the aggregates, it is not the receptacle of the aggregates (sko.n-
176
The Entry into the Middle Way
dhadhiira), 181 and it does not possess them. [The self, which is the basis of clinging to an "I,"J is established in dependence on the aggregates. 182 (151) [The self is, in this respect, similar to a carriage.) One does not consider a carriage to be different from its own parts, nor to be identical, nor to be in possession of them, nor is it "in" the parts, nor are they "in" it, nor is it the mere composite [of its parts); nor is it the shape [of those parts). 183 ( 152) If the carriage were simply the composite [of its parts), then it would exist even when [the parts) were disassembled. Also, it is unreasonable [to assume that] the carriage is the mere shape [of the parts], since in that event there would be no possessor of the parts (arigin) and consequently no parts. 184 (153) According to our opponent, even when included in the carriage, the shape of each part is the same as it was previously, [at the time when the carriage was not yet assembled). It follows that the carriage no more exists after assembly than it did among the disassembled parts. 185 (154) If, within the assembled carriage, the shape of the wheels and other parts is different [from the way it was before assembly,] then this [difference] should be evident. It is not, however, and therefore the carriage is not simply its shape. 186 , (155) Again, according to our opponent, there is no real "composite." In this case, the [carriage] could not be the shape of the composite of its parts, for how could there be any "shape" associated with that which is nonexistent? 187 (156) It is just as you, our opponent, have maintained: 188 The image of an effect, with an unreal quality of intrinsic being, [arises] in dependence on an unreal cause. One must realize that all things are produced in exactly this way. 189 (157) As a consequence, it would be unreasonable to assert that cognition of a jug [is founded) on the form of the jug, for example, which is analogous [to the parts of the carriage]. Form and the other aggregates do not exist, because they are not produced, and therefore it is illogical [to suppose] that they possess any shape. 190 [The self as a dependent designation (prajiioptir upadayo)]
(158) Even though [the existence of the carriage] must remain unproven according to any of the seven alternatives [enumerated above] either in the reality [expressed in the truth of the highest meaning) or in the context of everyday experience, nevertheless, [or everyday purposes it is designated in dependence on its parts-without anal· ysis. 191 (159) This very [carriage] is a possessor of parts or pieces, it i!
a
-The Directly Facing
177
referred to in the world as an "agent," and for [common] people it is even established as the "appropriator." 192 Do not lose touch with the screen taken for granted in the context of everyday experience. 193 (160) How does that which is nonexistent according to the seven alternatives nevertheless exist? The meditator does not find it to be existent, and he also easily penetrates to the reality [expressed in the truth of the highest meaning]. Therefore one should consider [the things of the world) to be established as [we have demonstrated) here. (161) When the carriage does not exist, then the "possessor of the parts" does not exist, and neither do the parts. 194 Just as, for example, when a carriage has burned, its parts no longer exist, so when the fire of discrimination (mati) burns the possessor of parts, the parts themselves [are incinerated]. 195 -,.,, (162) Similarly, because it is taken for granted in the context of everyday experience, we consider the self also to be the appropriator, in dependence on the psychophysical aggregates, the elements, and the six sense organs with their respective objects (iadayatanas). 196 The appropriated substratum is the object of the action, 197 and the [self] is the agent. 198 (163) However, because there is no such entity, it is neither eternal nor transitory; it is not produced, nor is it destroyed. It has no quality of permanence and so forth, nor of identity, nor of difference. 199 (164) The self is that with reference to which awareness of clinging to an "I" is continually manifest to all living beings, and awareness of "mine" becomes manifest with reference to that which [the "I"] possesses. This [self] exists as the result of delusion , insofar as it is taken for granted without [meditative J examination. 200 (165) No object of an action exists in the absence of an action, and so, in the absence of a self, there is nv "mine." The meditator sees the emptiness of "I" and "mine," and he will 1M: liberated. 201
[Summary of the refutation of production] (166) A jug, a woollen or burlap cloth, an army, a forest grove, a rosary, a heavenly tree, a house, a small cart, a guesthouse, and so on and so on-these things and whatever else that is, like them, apprehended by living beings: They are to be understood [as conventionally real], because the sage had no quarrel with the world . (167) Qualities , parts, clinging, distinguishing characteristics, fuel, and so on and so on; [in addition to] a possessor of qualities or parts, a base for· clinging or for distinguishing characteristics, fire, and so on : Such things do not exist according to the seven alternatives when , after the manner of the carriage, they are subjected to analysis . On the other
1 !
178
The Entry into the Middle Way
hand, they do exist insofar as they are taken for granted in the context of everyday experience. (168) If a cause produces its requisite effect, then on that very account it is a cause. If no effect is produced, then, in the absence [of any effect], the cause does not exist. It follows that when the cause exists, the effect will necessarily be produced [from it]. [If you, our opponent, wish to maintain that both of them are established as intrinsically existent, then] please state which will emerge from which, and which [of the two] will emerge first. 202 (169) If, according to our opponent, the cause produces its effect through connection [with it], then in that event, since both of them would have the same potentiality, there would be no difference between the agent of production and the effect. If, on the other hand, [the. cause and its effect are absolutely] discrete, then the cause would not be distinguishable from any non-cause. And apart from these two, there is no other conception [of the cause-effect relationship]. 203 (170) If you say that the cause does not produce the effect, then [we respond as follows:] There is in that case nothing to be referred to as "the effect"; [moreover,] a cause divorced from any effect becomes a non-cause, and such a thing simply does not exist. 204 Because we maintain that both [cause and effect] are like magical illusions, therefore we are subject to no [logical] fallacy, and the elements of everyday experience are left intact. 205
[Defense ofthe Prasangika's use of deconstructive analysis] (171) [O~jection] Does [your] refutation refute that which is to be refuted by connecting [with· it], or is there no connection [between the two]? Does not the fallacy [just set forth) accrue to you, [the Pra.saiigika, J as well? When you speak like this you only defeat your own position, and this being the case, you are incapable of refuting [the position of an opponent]. ( 172) The consequence of your words is like a double-edged swordwithout reason you deny [the existence of) all entities. Noble men would never agree with you, for lacking any position of your own, you make use of any sort of refutation so as to construct an argument. 206 (173) [Response] Does a refutation refute [an opponent's position] without connection, or is there connection? The fallacy already mentioned above would certainly accrue to any position entailing [belief in intrinsic] existence. This consequence is of no concern to us, however, because we have no position. 2 0 7 ( 17 4) According to our opponent, the characteristics that are found in the sphere of the sun are also [apparent] in its reflection, where one
v !
The DiredJy Focinr
179
may perceive the alterations [resulting from] an eclipse, for example. Although it would obviously be unreasonable [to speak of] "connection" or "non-connection" between the sun and its reflection, still, as a mere dependent conventional reality, [the reflection) does arise. (175) Similarly, even though it is not a real [face, the reflection in a mirror] is useful for a person who desires to make himself attractive, and in this way it does [conventionally) exist. In the present instance, [our] arguments are just like [a reflection] through which one becomes aware of the possibility of cleansing [spiritual ignorance from) the face of wisdom . They are to be understoOd as capable of establishing certain conclusions even without recourse to generally accepted [concepts of objectively grounded meaning]. (176) If the argument designed to substantiate your conclusion is [taken for] an objective fact, 208 and the nature of the conclusion is also understood to be an objective fact, then arguments like the one presented above on "connection" would be relevant. In this case [we maintain no such reified concepts], and [our opponent's objection] amounts to nothing more than his own [unsubstantiated] belief. 209 (177) It is relatively easy to understand what is meant by the absence _of intrinsic being within all things, but it is quite a bit more difficult to comprehend [the ramifications of this concept of] intrinsic being. Indeed, why do you ensnare the world in the dangerous net of your rationalism? (178) One must understand that any remaining refutations [not specifically dealt with here] are implicit in what has already been demonstrated above, and they also could be offered as responses to positions involving [notions of] "connection," and so forth. It is not true that we Prasangikas make use of any sort of refutation. As previously explained, any additional [arguments] are to be developed by using the same technique [of reductio ad absurdum]. [The sixteen examplesof emptiness2 10 Introduction} (179) Selflessness was explained under two aspects, for the liberation of all living beings, as differentiated into: selflessness of [insentient] things (dharmanairtitmya); and selflessness of the person (pudgalanairiUmya). In addition, the master reclassified these same [two categories] and taught about them under several different aspects, for the benefit of Various types of disciples. (180) He explained sixteen [aspects of] emptiness, each one accompanied with examples, and subsequently he condensed these into four explanations which are accepted by the Mahayana. L
180
The Entry into the Middle Way
[The examples of emptiness] (181) (I] The eye is empty of eye[ness], because that is its intrinsic nature. The ear, nose, tongue, body, and mind are also to be accounted for in this way. (182) The eye and the other (five of the] six (faculties] are neither eternal nor subject to decay, and their absence of intrinsic being is referred to as "internal emptiness" (adhyiitmaiiinyatii). (183) (II] Form (riipa) is empty of form(ness], because that is its intrinsic nature. Sound, odor, taste, tactile and [mental] things are also similar [to form in this respect]. (184) The absence of any essence within form and the others is referred to as "external emptiness" (bahirdhiifiinyatii). [III] The absence of intrinsic being associated with both is (called] "internal-external emptiness" (adhyiitmo.bahirdluifiinyatii). ( 185) [IV] The absence of intrinsic being of [all] things is referred to by wise men as "emptiness," and this emptiness also is considered to be empty of any essence of emptiness. (186) The emptiness of what is called "emptiness" is referred to as "the emptiness of emptiness" (fiinyatiifiinyatii), and it is explained in this way for the purpose of controverting any understanding of emptiness as an [ontological reference to) "being." 211 (187) (V) The directions are vast, dnce they engulf without remainder the insentient world as well as sentient beings, and since, as an example of the immeasurable, they are without any bounds. (188) The emptiness of the ten directions is [called] "the vast emptiness" (mo.hiifiinyatii), and it was explained in this way for the purpose of controverting any understanding of vastness [as an ontological reference to "being"]. (189) [VI] NirvaQ.a is of the highest meaning because it is the most excellent goal, and its emptiness (of intrinsic being) is [called) "the emptiness of the highest meaning" (paramiirthafiinyatii). ( 190) The emptiness of the highest meaning was taught by those who know the [truth of the] highest meaning, for the purpose of controverting any understanding of nirviil).a as [an ontological reference to] "being." ( 192) [VII) The triple world is designated as composite because it arises from [causes and) conditions. Its emptiness of [intrinsic being] is [called] "the emptiness of composite things" (samskrtafiinyatii). (193) [VIII) That which has no extremes is called the transcendence of extremes. Its emptiness of just that [transcendence of extremes] is referred to as "the emptiness of the transcendence of extremes" (aryan~ ta#inyatii). 212
181
(194-195) [IX] The round of transmigration has no beginning or end, and because of this, it is called the absence of beginning and end. Existence is devoid of coming and going, like a dream, and its voidness of [beginning, middle, and end] is referred to in philosophical treatises (fiistras) as "the emptiness of that which is without beginning and end" (anavariigrafiinyatii). (196) [X] That which is rejected and expelled is called blameworthy, and the blameless is what is not abandoned-it is anything not rejected. (197) [The blameless] is empty of blamelessness, and this is called "the emptiness ofthe blameless" (anavakarafiinyatii). ( 198-199) [XI] The essence of composite [and noncomposite J things is not created by the disciples (friivalcas), the pratyekabuddhas, the sons of the buddha, or the tathiigatas, and therefore this essence of composite [and noncomposite] things is referred to as the fundamental source. The emptiness of this [fundamental source] of the same [fundamental source] is [called] "the emptiness of the fundamental source" (prakrtifiinyatii). (200-201) [XII] The eighteen elements, 213 the six tangible sense organs (sparfiiyatana), and the six sensations that originate from them, in addition to that with form and that which is without form, as well as composite and noncomposite things: The emptiness [of intrinsic being] with respect to all of these is [called] "the emptiness of all things" (sarvadharmafiinyatii). [XIII] Form and the other [aggregates] are without any essence, and [their emptiness] is [called] "the emptiness of any intrinsic distinguishing characteristic" (svalakiarudiinyatii). (202) Form possesses the intrinsic distinguishing characteristic of color and shape; feeling (vedanii) has the self-nature of experience; apperception (samjiiii) apprehends [internal and external] distinguishing characteristics; the prenatal dispositions (samskiiras) are that which fashions [mental, vocal, and physical action]. (203) The distinguishing characteristic of consciousness (vijiiiina) is cognition of discrete objects. Misery is the intrinsic distinguishing characteristic of [all five J psychophysical aggregates, and the self-nature of the [eighteen] elements is considered a venomous serpent. (204) The buddha declared that the sense organs and their respective ~ensory fields (iiyatanas) are the gateway to birth. Dependent origination Is the distinguishing characteristic of [all] composite things. (205) Giving is [the distinguishing characteristic] of the perfection of generosity; the absence of anxiety is the distinguishing characteristic of morality; the distinguishing characteristic of patience is lack of anger; and that of energy is freedom from slothfulness. (206) Meditation possesses the distinguishing characteristic of concentration, and the distinguishing characteristic of: wisdom is noncling-
182
The E.ntry into the Middle Wa)
in g. These are called the distinguishing characteristics of the six perfec· tions. (207) The perfectly knowing one declared that the [eight levels ofl meditation ( dhyiinas), the immeasurables, and likewise any other of th~ formless [meditations] possess the distinguishing characteristic of freedom from agitation. 214 (208) The thirty-seven ancillary factors to awakening have the intrinsic distinguishing characteristic of contributing to escape [from the round of transmigration] (naiikramya). (The three gateways to deliverance215 have the following intrinsic characteristics:] (First,) emptiness is unapprehended, and therefore its distinguishing characteristic is isolation ( viveka) [from the defilements of reified concepts]. (209) 216 (Second,) signlessness [has the distinguishing characteristic of] peace. (Third,) the distinguishing characteristic of the third [gateway] (wishlessness) is the absence of misery and confusion. The [eight types of] deliverance (QJ.tavimolcyas) have the distinguishing characteristic of contributing to liberation. (210) 217 :rhe [ten] powers are said to have the intrinsic nature of extreme precision in ordering [the sensory fields]. The [four types of] fearlessness in rescuing [all living beings from suffering] are the essence of extreme stability. (211) The [four types of] analytic knowledge (pratisamvid)-confidence and the other three, 218 possess the distinguishing characteristic of inseparability. Securing benefit for all living beings is called "the great lovingkindness" (mahiimaitri). (212) "The great compa.Ssion" (mahiikarurui) rescues those who are immersed in suffering. Sympathetic joy [in the happiness of others] is the distinguishing characteristic of "the great joy" (mahiimuditii). Equanimity (upe!cyii) is said to possess the distinguishing characteristic of unscatteredness ( avyavakirrwtii). (213) The unique qualities (iiverrikadharmas) [of a buddha] are considered to be eighteen in number, and because the master did not expropriate them (from another], so they possess the intrinsic distinguishing characteristic of nonexpropriation. (214) Direct perception (pratyalcya) is considered to be the distinguishing characteristic of the omniscient wisdom [of a buddha]. Other [conceptually based knowledge] is not referred to as "direct perception," because it is involved in the ephemeral. ,.,. (215) [XIV] The ultimate emptiness of any distingUishing characteristic within composite and noncomposite things is [called] "the emptiness of the intrinsic distinguishing characteristic" (svalak~arzafiinyatii). (216) [XV] The present does not endure, and the past and future do
r
The Directly Facing
183
not exist. These are not apprehended, so they are referred to as "th( unapprehended." (217) The unapprehended is devoid of any intrinsic essence, neithe1 does it endure eternally nor is it subject to decay, and this is (called] "the emptiness of the unapprehended" (anupalamhhafrlnyatii). (218) [XVI] Entities are without any essential quality of co!flposi· tion, because they originate from (causes and) conditions. The empti· ness of this quality of composition is [called) "the emptiness of the non· entity" (abhD.vo.Srlnyatii). 219 [The four condensed explanations]
(219) In brief, the word "entity" refers to the five psychophysica aggregates. They are empty of[intrinsic being], and this is explained a1 "the emptiness of the (composite] entity" (bhD.vo.Srlnyatii). 220 (220) Again, put briefly, noncomposite things are referred to af "nonentities." They are empty of the [intrinsic nature of] a nonentity and this is (called) "the emptiness ofthe nonentity" (abhD.vo.Srlnyatii). (221) (Third,) intrinsic nature is not fabricated [by the sravakas, tht pratyekabuddhas, or the bodhisattvas), and so it is designated a! "intrinsic nature." The absence of an essence associated with intrinsi1 nature is [called] "the emptiness of intrinsic nature" (svahhD.vo.Srlnyatii). (222) (Fourth,) regardless of whether or not any buddha were tc become incarnate, the emptiness of all entities would still be proclaimec as "being another" (parabhD.va). (223) In the system (presented in the literature dealing with) perfect wisdom, the "reality limit" (bhrltako.ti) and "suchness" (tathatii) are [both called] "the emptiness of being another" (parabhD.vo.Srlnyatii). [Conclusion]
f'
(224) (The bodhisattva] radiates light through the brilliant ray of wisdom. He realizes that this triple world is like a medicinal herb lying in the palm of his own hand, since it is from the beginning unproduced. And through the power of conventional truth he goes on to cessation. 221 (225) Even though his mind rests perpetually in cessation, still he generates compassion for all living beings that are without any protector. Later, through his wisdom, he will triumph over the sravaka and the pratyekabuddha. (226) With his broad white wings of the screen and of the reality [expressed in the truth of the highest meaning), the king of the swans soars a:head of the common flock. 222 Held aloft by the strong wind of
184
The Entry into the Middle Way
virtue, he passes over to excellence on the farther shore of the ocean of royal [buddha] qualities. So ends the sixth [stage in the] generation of the thought of awakening called "The Directly Facing" (Abhimii.khl), according to the exposition given in The Entry into the Middle Way.
' THE SEVENTH STAGE IN THE GENERATION Of THE THOUGHT OF AWAKENING
THE FAR ADVANCED (DORANGAMA)
(la-c) 1 At the stage [called] "The Far Advanced" [the bodhisattva] enters into cessation [of dualistic thought )2 from one moment to the next, and his skillful means also attain a glorious brilliance. So ends the seventh [stage in the] generation of the thought of awakening called "The Far Advanced" (Diirarigama), according to the exposition given in The Entry into the Middle Way.
185
THE EIGHTH STAGE IN THE GENERATION Of THE THOUGHT OF AWAKENING
THE IMMOVABLE (ACALA)
(ld-2) The [thought of awakening] becomes irreversible when, for the puq)ose of gaining greater and greater virtue, the mighty one enters into the [stage called] "The Immovable." His vow [to rescue all living beings] is entirely purified, and the conquerors lift him-from cessation.' (3) The wisdom of non clinging does not abide in the company of any faults, and therefore at the eighth stage these impurities along with their roots are thoroughly eradicated. The afflictions have been extinguished, yet _even though [the bodhisattva] is preeminent in the triple world, still he is unable to obtain the treasure of the [qualities] of the buddhas, which is limitless as the heavens. (4a-b) Although the round of transmigration has been stopped, [the bodhisattva] will go on to obtain the ten powers and use them for the benefit ofliving beings. So ends the eighth [stage in the] generation of the thought of awakening called "The Immovable" (Acalti), according to the exposition given in The Entry into the Middle Way.
186
THE NINTH STAGE IN THE GENERATION OF THE THOUGHT OF AWAKENING
THE UNERRING INTELLECT (SADHUMATij
(4c-d) At the ninth [stage] each and every power is fully purified, and likewise, [the bodhisattva) also obtains the (four] completely pure intrinsic qualities (svagurwsY of analytic knowledge. So ends the ninth [stage in the] generation of the thought of awakening called "The Unerring Intellect" (Siidhumati), according to the exposition given in The Entry into the Middle Way.
187
THE TENTH STAGE IN THE GENERATION OF THE THOUGHT OF AWAKENING
THE CLOUD OF DHARMA (DHARMAMEGHA)
(5) At the tenth [stage, the bodhisattva] receives from all the buddhas the most sacred investiture, and his wisdom as well reaches its zenith. Like the shower falling from a thundercloud, the rain of the Dharma falls spontaneously from the son of the conquerors to ripen the crop of virtue in all living beings. So ends the tenth [stage in the] generation of the thought of awakening called "The Cloud of Dharma" (Dharmamegha), according to the exposition given in The Entry into the Middle Way.
188
'
l l
THE QUALITIES AND FRUITS OF THE TEN STAGES
[The qualities associated with the ten stages of the bodhisattva's path]
1 !
(1) During [the first stage, the bodhisattva] sees a hundred buddhas and understands that they have invested him with their blessing. He remains at this stage for hundreds of eons, and (his wisdom] permeates the initial and terminal boundaries [of this period of time]. (2) The wise one enters into and arises from a hundred stages of balanced concentration. He is capabl~of shaking a hundred world systems, or of illuminating them . And likewise, by means of his supernormal powers he spiritually matures a hundred living beings and travels to as many [buddha] fields. (3) He throws open the gates of the Dharma. The son of the sages manifests within his own body [a hundred other] bodies-each one of them enhanced by its own retinue and displayed in company with a hundred sons of the conquerors. (4-5) While dwelling in [the second stage called] "The Immaculate," the wise one obtains one thousand times as many qualities as were obtained during his stay at [the stage called] "The joyous," and during the succeeding five stages the bodhisattva obtains one hundred thousand times the original number [of qualities] , then one hundred million times as many, then one billion , one hundred billion, and at the seventh stage, thousands ofbillions of times as many qualities. (6) (The bodhisattva] who abides free fr~m reified concepts at the . stage [called] "The Immovable" obtains qualities equal in number to the measure of atoms contained in three hundred million world systems taken together. (7) At the [ninth] stage [called] "The Unerring Intellect," the bodhisattva obtains the qualities mentioned above [in numbers equal to] ten times the measure of atoms in countless hundreds of thousands [of world systems] taken together. (8) These qualities of his acquired here through the levels of the ten
189
L
190
The Entry into the Middle Way
[stages] far exceed the range of speech, for ithey are as vast as the total number of atoms [in the cosmos]-an inexpressible figure. (9) Moment by moment, in the pores o( the bodhisattva's body, countle~s fully awakened buddhas are displayed, along with gods, demons', men, and other living beings.
[The qualities associated with the stage of\a fully awakened buddha] (1) 1 The moon shines brightly only in a stainless sky, and therefore, at this point you [the bodhisattva] must once again exert yourself in order to reach the stage where the ten powers [of a buddha] are produced.2 You must attain the highest [stage of a buddha], the place of most excellent peace, the incomparable limit to all [buddha] qualities.
[The sameness of all things] (2) Despite the divisions created by vessels, space is itself without any divisions. Similarly, the reality [expressed in the truth of the highest meaning] is undivided by the presence of entities. 3 [The bodhisattva] fully comprehends the uniformity [of all things ( dharmas)] , and with this noble realization he comprehends [all] objects of knowledge in a single instant. (3) [Objection] If reality is peace, then the intellect will never penetrate [to the truth of the highest meaning], and there can be no knowledge of an object which the intellect cannot reach. This being the case, when there is no knowledge whatsoever, how can there be any act of knowing? These are the contradictions [implicit in your words]. And in the absence of anyone who knows, according to you, who could teach to others that this is so? 4 (4) [Response] When nonproduction is reality, and the intellect as well is unproduced, then it is as if [the intellect] conceives ofreality through being depfndent on [its own] images. Whatever image the mind assumes, it knows just that object-and [that object] is cognized [solely] in dependence on convention. 5
[The three bodies of a buddha The body of bliss (sambhogakaya)] (5) The body of bliss of[ the buddhas] is made complete through meritorious action. By the power [of the bodhisattva's previous vow], sound emanates from [bodies of] transformation, from the sky, or from other sources, and this sound teaches the reality of [all] things, so that even ~orldly people can know what is real. 6 (6) Here [in the context of everyday experience), a potter's wheel is
i
L ~
Qualities and Fruits of the Ten Stages
i
'
191
[initially] spun through the extended eforts of a Strong potter. Once turning, though, it continues to spin even without the benefit of any additional effort from the potter, and in this way it furnishes the cause for the production of jugs and other kinds of pottery. (7) Similarly, [the buddha] puts forth no effort whatsoever as he abides in his body of the Dharina, and yet his totally inconceivable deeds are accomplished through the virtue he acquired [previously] as a living being, 7 and in particular through his vow [to lead all living beings to awakening].
[The body of the Dharma] (8) When the dry kindling of the object of knowledge is incinerated without remainder, the peace [which remains] is the body of the Dharma of the conquerors. There is then no production and no cessation, and through [previous] termination of conceptual processes this [peace] is directly experienced through the body [of the Dharma]. 8 (9) This body of peace is copious like the wishing tree and devoid of reified concepts like a wish-fulfilling crystaV Abiding indefinitely, for the benefit of the world, until the liberation of all living beings, it appears in the absence of conceptual diffusion.
[The body of transformation] (10) Although the circumstances surrounding his own former births have ceased, simultaneously, in a single body of form realized through the appropriate cause, 10 the sage comprehensively displays a clear and ordered account of his various births: (11) The type of buddha fields and the sages therein-their bodies, their practices, and the kinds of powers they possessed; the size and nature of his monastic order of disciples, the bodhisattvas, and the types offorms they possessed there; (12) which [beings] followed the Dharma and which believed in a self; the Dharma they heard [being taught]; the practices in which they were engaged; the extent of their offerings and donations. All of this without remainder is displayed within a single body. (13) Similarly, he clearly displays in the pores of this body all of the practices [which he engaged in while a bodhisattva], the totality of circumstances surrounding the earlier practice of morality, patience, energy, meditation, and wisdom. (14) [He further displays] the buddhas who have gone and those who are yet to come, as well as those who dwell at present in the world and, through teaching the Dharma in a suitable voice extending out to the limit ofthe heavens, bring relief to living beings caught up in suffering.
192
The Entry into the Middle Way
(15) He simultaneously demonstrates in every pore his understanding that all facets of his practice-from the first thought (bodhicitta) up to the very essence of awakening-have possessed the intrinsic nature of a magical illusion, and that he is himself the same. (16) Likewise, he simultaneously displays in each pore the practice of the bodhisattvas of the three times, that of the honorable pratyekabuddhas and of the sriivakas, as well as all the circumstances surrounding the [practices of the common] people. ( 17) These [deeds of the] pure [buddhas] are accomplished merely through their wish [to do so]. Worlds reaching out to the heavens are displayed in a single particle of dust so that countless numbers of them permeate its every recess-yet this dust particle does not become any larger, and the worlds themselves become no more subtle. (18) [0 blessed one,] you who are without reified concepts, until the end of existence you display from moment to moment various practices as numerous as the uncountable totality of dust particles found in the whole ofJambudvipa. 11
[The ten powers of a buddha Summary] (19) These are the ten powers [of a buddha]: [I] the power of knowledge concerning what is a proper basis [for practice] and what is not (stiiniistanajii.iinabala); [II] knowledge of the ripening of actions (karmavipakajii.iinabala); [III] knowledge of the various aspirations [of all living beings] (nanadhimuktijii.anabala); [IV] the power of knowledge concerning the various elements 12 (nanadhatujii.anabala); (20) [V] knowledge of the excellence or deficiency of the capacities [of various disciples] (indriyavariivarajii.anabala); [VI] the power of knowledge concerning paths leading to every destination (sarvatragamanipratipajjii.anabala); [VII] the power of knowledge concerning all the meditations, liberation, states of concentration, and the attainments (sarvadhyanavimo/qasamadhisamapattisamklefavyavadanavyutthanajii.anabala); (21) [VIII] knowledge entailing memory of previous lives (piirvanivasanusmrtijii.anabala); [IX] knowledge of death, transmigration, and rebirth (cyutyutpattijii.anabala); and [X] the power of knowledge that the influx of depravities has been exhausted (afravak~ayajii.anabala).
[The ten powers of a buddha Explanation of each power] (22) [I] [The buddhas] who know declare that whatever is certain to be produced from a given cause has that [cause] as its basis, and what is
')p,z
Qualities and Fruits of the Ten Stages
193
in contradiction [with these circumstances] as explained is not a basis. This power is explained as an unobstructed understanding incorporating innumerable objects of knowledge. (23) [II] This power is considered to embrace objects of knowledge in all three times. It is an unobstructed, analytical capacity of understanding with respect to desirable and undesirable [actions J and those opposed to these two, with respect to action which has the nature of exhausting [polluted actions J, and with respect to the great variety of ripened consequences associated with these [types of action]. (24) [III] This power is said to embrace all [living beings J throughout past, present, and future. It is an understanding of the multiplicity of inferior, middling, and superior aspirations which are created through the strength arising from clinging and the other afflictions, as well as an understanding of those aspirations hidden by other [factors]. (25) [IV] The buddhas, expert in the divisions of elements, declare that the intrinsic nature of the eye, for example, is just these elements. This infinite understanding of perfect buddhas is asserted as a power which comprehends the particularities of the elements in all their aspects. (26) [V] This power is declared to be all-encompassing, unimpeded understanding of the relative capacity of various intentions: 13 the strongest, called superior, as well as those involved in the circumstances surrounding middling and dull [intentions], which are referred to as inferior. This also includes a similar understanding of the various faculties, the visual and so on. 14 (27) [VI] This power is asserted to be an unobstructed, all-encompassing understanding concerning which paths lead to [the awakening of] a conqueror, which to the awakening of a pratyekabuddha, which to the awakening of a sravaka, and which to existence as a hungry ghost, an animal, a god or a human, or perhaps to the hell regions. (28) [VII] This power is explained as unobstructed understanding of the different divisions [of practice followed by] the innumerable meditators of the world, including the types of meditations ( dhyiinas), the eight types of liberations (vimuktis), the dwelling in peace (famatha), and the [nine] attainments (samiipattis). 15 (29) [VIII] This power is explained as understanding that encompasses [memories of the buddha's own] past terms of existence which continued only for as long as delusion remained, as well as [memories of ~he past lives of] each of the other countless living beings that exist, Including the causes, the location, and the nature [of each of their lives]. (30) [IX] This power is defined as an unattached, comprehensive, correct, and limitless knowledge which comprehends the time of the death, transmigration, and rebirth of each individual living being, in
1 194
The Entry into the Middle Wa>
association with the diverse circumstances of living beings in a world reaching out to the limits of the heavens. (31) [X] This power is defined as an infinite, unfettered understand· ing that through the power of omniscience the afflictions of the conquer ors, along with the seeds [of those afflictions], are immediately destroyed, whereas the wisdom of the sravakas [and pratyekabuddhas l eradicates the afflictions [alone].
[Conclusion] (32) A bird does not turn back because it has reached the limit of the sky-rather, it will return because its strength has been depleted. In the same way, the sravakas [and pratyekabuddhas], along with the sons of the conquerors, turn back from the boundless sky of inexpressible buddha qualities. (33) In this case, how can one like me even know of your qualitiesmuch less describe them? Nevertheless, because the noble Nagarjuna explained them, I also have said a very little here to aid in the removal ofdoubt. 16 (34) Emptiness is profound, and the other' qualities are extensive: [All the qualities of a buddha] are realized only through comprehension of a way profound and extensive. (35) You who are of unmoving form descend incarnate into the triple world, and through [your body of] transformation you exhibit birth and passing away, as well as the wheel of the peace of awakening. Through your compassion you lead worldly people of various sorts of behaviorall those bound by the many snares of desire-to the transcendence of suffering (nirva~a). (36) Without knowledge of the reality [expressed in the truth of the highest meaning], no amount of exertion will dispel all stains. The reality of all things is independent of any division, and the wisdom which has this reality as its object is also undifferentiated. Therefore, you taught all living beings that the [ostensibly] dissimilar vehicles 17 are [ultimately] without any distinction. ,/ (37) As the result of impurities which produce faults in living beings, 18 the world does not penetrate to the profound level of a buddha's practice. 0 Tathagata, because you possess wisdom along with skillful means which arise from compassion, and because you vowed to liberate all living beings(38) Therefore, like the wise [captain] who created en route a delightful city in order to allay the fatigue of his crew journeying to the isle of gems, you created the vehicles [of the sravaka and the pratyekabuddha]" in order to direct the mind of the disciples toward a way culminating in
J
.,
T Qualities and Fruits of the Ten Stages
195
extinction [of the afflictions) . Elsewhere you taught [the Mahayana) to those whose intellect was purified and purged [of those afflictions]. (39) 0 Sugata, as many minute atoms as exist in the countless directions which furnish objects for [the wisdom of) the buddhas, just that many eons passed [while you strove for) most pure and excellent awakening. Indeed, this mystery of yours is not revealed [to those who have not already cultivated the proper spiritual motivation]. 19 ( 40) 0 Conqueror, your own mother is wisdom-from her you were born, and this philosophy [of the Madhyamika) was composed by your nursemaid, compassion . How could you find peace [for yourself alone] so long as all the worlds [of living beings] have not passed over into this most excellent peace, and space itself has not been destroyed? ( 41) Even a mother's suffering for her son who is endangered by poisoned food is not so great as your compassion for the living beings within [this round of transmigration J, who through the fault of delusion are consuming food saturated with the poison of everyday experience. Because of this [compassion], 0 Blessed One, you have not passed over into most excellent peace. ( 42) Unskilled creatures are controlled by a mind attached to [reified concepts of) "being" and "nonbeing," so that they are overcome by faults, and they experience suffering derived from birth and death, or from contact with unattractive things and separation from attractive things. For this reason, 0 Blessed One, the world has become the object of your love, and consumed with compassion, your heart draws back from the peace [of cessation]. For you there is no nirviiQa.
'
-.. .
EPILOGUE
(1) This approach has been set forth by the monk Candrakirti, according to both treatises drawn from the Madhyamika texts themselves and to the scriptural tradition. · (2) Wise men affirm that the doctrine of emptiness is not found in any philosophy other than [the Madhyamika] and, similarly, that this particular approach as well is not found anywhere else [besides this text], although it is firmly based on [the Madhyamika teachings]. (3) There are those who have abandoned the beneficial philosophy [of the Madhyamika) without even trying to understand it, simply because of fear arising from the [deep] color of the wide ocean [ol Nagarjuna's profound wisdom]. Candrakirti has now fulfilled their wishes through this [treatise which explains] the chapters of [Nagarjuna's Madhyamakafiistra], like the dew which coaxes into bloom the buds of an evening lotus. ( 4) Although the exposition of the reality [expressed in the truth ol the highest meaning) is profound and frightening, it will certainly be understood by a person who has previously cultivated [his textual study in the practice of meditation]. 1 Any others will never comprehend it, despite the breadth of their learning. One must clearly perceive that all other philosophical systems are composed simply as justification fm their own unstated presuppositions-as, for instance, in the case ol those systems which postulate the existence of an [ultimately real] self. And once this has been done, all fascination for theses proposed outsidt this treatise should be relinquished. (5) Now that this presentation of Master Nagarjuna's most beneficia philosophy is complete, let whatever merit I have so acquired spreac into every recess of the mind darkened by afflictions, like the white ligh1 of stars scattered across the blue autumn sky; or let it become a treasun held in the heart, like a jewel set into the expanded hood of a might) cobra, so that all the worlds [of living beings] may come to understanc the truth [of the highest meaning] and quickly arrive at the [final desti· nation of the path ]-the stage of a tathagata.
196
NOTES BIBLIOGRAPHY
..
INDEX
NOTES
SECTION ONE 1. There seems to be a growing awareness of these methodological problems. Moreover, the style and content of the present work owe a great deal not only to many carefully reasoned interpretive studies, but also-as I have tried to make clear throughout-to a large body of meticulous philological and text-critical scholarship which alone provides the essential foundation for all that must follow if we are to come to terms with the Madhyamika. 2. Gadamer 1976, 28. 3. Rorty 1982, 151. Bloom's concept of misreading ultimately derives from Derrida: "According to the paleonymic strategy urged by Derrida, 'mis-reading' retains the trace of truth, because noteworthy readings involve claims to truth and because interpretation is structured by the attempt to catch what other readings have missed and misconstrued. Since no reading can escape correction, all readings are misreadings; but this leaves not a monism but a double movement. Against the claim that, if there are only misreadings, then anything goes, one affirms that misreadings are errors; but against the positivist claim that they are errors because they strive toward but fail to attain a true reading, one maintains that true readings are only particular misreadings: misreadings whose misses have been missed. This account of misreading is not, perhaps, a coherent, consistent position, but, its advocates would claim, it resists metaphysical idealizations and captures the temporal dynamic of our interpretive situation" (Culler 1983, 178). 4. Ibid., 152. 5. Ibid. 6. Ruegg 1983, 239. 7. Ibid., 238. 8. Becker 1982, 134. 9. Gadamer 1976, xxi (translator's introduction); cf. also ibid., 11: "No assertion is possible that cannot be understood as an answer to a question, and assertions can only be understood in this way." 10. Cf. Gadamer 1988, 263-264: "Every age has to understand a transmit-
199
200
Notes to Pages I0-1 ~
ted text in its own way, for the text is part of the whole of the tradition in whid the age takes an objective interest and in which it seeks to understand itself. Tht real meaning of a text, as it speaks to the interpreter, does not depend on tht contingencies of the author and whom he originally wrote for. It certainly is no identical with them, for it is always partly determined also by the historical situ· ation of the interpreter and hence by the totality of the objective course of his tory. . . . Not occasionally only, but always, the meaning of a text goes beyonc its author. That is why understanding is not merely a reproductive, but alway: a productive attitude as well . . . . It is enough to say that we understand in < different way, if we understand at all." 11. Webster's Ninth New Collegiate Dictionary defines empirical as "relying or experience or observation alone often without due regard for system and the ory." The very idea of such raw experience is highly questionable, and tht Madhyamika philosopher is of course not alone in calling attention to the inti mate bond between one's concepts and one's experience in the world. Com pare, e.g., Feyerabend 1975, 76 and passim, on the subject of natural interpre tations, and Rorty 1982, 4ff. 12. Cavell1966, 164-165. 13. Rorty 1982, xiv. 14. Ibid.; cf. also Feyerabend 1975, 189, where he characterizes the "epistemological anarchist" in similar terms: "His favorite pastime is to confuse rationalists by inventing compelling reasons for unreasonable doctrines." 15. Cf. Feyerabend 1975, 154fT., for a discussion of how these same tactic~ have been used throughout modern history in the service of all revolutionar~ ideas. 16. The possibility of communication is not as remote as it might seem, how ever. The subjects of conversation in medieval India, though dominated by Hindu preoccupations with metaphysical problems, were not all that different from the concerns of many twentieth-century Western philosophers dominated by Kantian epistemological preoccupations with subject and object, representation and the real, and so forth. 17. See Cavell1966, 176-177, where Cavell quotes from Wittgenstein's lectures as reported in Moore 1955, 26. 18. Cf. PSP, 373: yadii tu timiropaghiityaviparltaiiinyatiidariananjananjitabuddhinayanii/1 santa~ samutpannatattvajnana bhavanti tadii tat tattvam anadhigamanayogena svayam adhigacchantlti I (When, however, their eye of awakening is anointed with the salve of the direct vision of emptiness, which cures any optical defect, and [nondualistic 1 knowledge of reality has arisen [within them 1, then these people realize for themselves the reality of that [which had been previously misunderstood1-by not realizing it!) (All translations are the author's unless otherwise indicated.) It is extremely important to see that the Madhyamika does not take for granted an epistemology that preserves all the old presuppositions about knowledge as representation, as a relationship between an independent subjective presence and its objective referents. What must, in the beginning, be characterized as a new conceptualization of the world turns out, in the end, tc;> be a modified observational language incorporating its own set of natural observations. Also see Rorty 1982, 4ff., and §4.5, below . . 19. Gadamer 1976, 27, and 1988, 270.
rJ
Notes to Pages I 3- I 7
201
20. My major regret in this respect is that I have been unable to include here a complete translation of Candraklrti's own commentary on The Entry into the Middle Way, which would have greatly facilitated understanding of the text. This project is presently under way, but it will not be ready for some time, and it seemed best to go ahead with publication of a translation of the stanzas. Only a very small percentage of the Miidhyamika literature is available in Western languages. We do not yet even have a complete translation of any one commentary on Niigiirjuna's Madhyamakafii.stra, the most fundamental of all Miidhyamika sources! 21. Here is the force of the claim embodied in proselytic scholarship, for the entire deconstructive project of the Miidhyamika needs to be read as a response to the question: How can all living beings find happiness, peace, and liberation from every form of fear and suffering? But mere reconstruction does not suffice to make this a real question for us. 22. Jong 1974, 26. 23. Ruegg 1967, 5. 24. Gadamer 1976, 92 . 25 . Demieville (1973, 247) seems to find a similar stress on purpose or application in the early Chinese understanding of the Buddhist "absolute" : "L'idealisme naif qui nie !'existence des choses exclurait une telle activite (desinteresse] et fausserait le rapport entre !'esprit et les choses en y introduisant un dualisme, une relativite qui doit etre neutralisee en un absolu, absolu con.;u du reste en ses consequences pratiques ." 26 . Cf. MA 6.119: I rang gi Ita Ia chags dang de bzhin du II gzhan gyi Ita Ia 'khrug gang rtog pa nyid II de'i phyir 'dod chags khong khro mam bsal te II mam dpyod pa na myur du grol bar 'gyur I (Attachment to one's own view and likewise aversion to the view of another is itself evidence of reified thinking. When one sets aside attachment and aversion and conducts an analysis [of all views), he will soon find liberation .) 27. Cf. Rorty's (1982, 35) concerns about Pears's interpretation ofWittgenstein. 28. The first quota:tion isMS 13.8cd: ymim tu siinyatiidntis tiin asii.dhyiin babhii~ire; the second appears in PSP, 540, where it is cited by Candraklrti from an unidentified source. The entire verse reads, "The lord of the world taught that no salvation is itself salvation-a knot made by space is released only by space" (anirvii"(lam hi nirvii"(lam lokaniithena desitam I iikiiiena krto granthir iikiiienaiva mocitafz/1). Cf. Wittgenstein : "Why is philosophy so complicated? It ought to be entirely simple . Philosophy unties the knots in our thinking that we have, in a senseless way, put there . To do this it must make movements as complicated as these knots are . Although the results of philosophy are simple, its method cannot be, if it is to succeed. The complexity of philosophy is not its subject matter, but our knotted understanding" (cited in Fann 1969, 103 n . 4).
SECTION TWO 1. In this discussion I have used the term Hlnayiina as it is used by Niigiirjuna, Candrakirti, and other Mahiiyiinists; in fact, the Miidhyamika critique
l 202
Notes to Pages 17-18
was almost certainly directed against only one of at least eighteen early Indian Hinayana sects, the Sarvastivada: see Lamotte 1944-1980, 3:xvff., for a discussion of the Sarvastivadin literature. 2. Stcherbatsky 1923 still provides the best introductory survey of the Hinayana concept of a dharma. The most recent interpretation of the Mahayana critique of this concept is Gudmunsen 1977. 3. The English word reality is misleading here: Sanskrit tattva is composed of two grammatical elements: tat 'that' or 'it,' and tva '-ness,' a suffix used to form abstract nouns. Tattva is etymologically "that-ness" or "it-ness." 4. In fact, as Daye (1975, 84) has suggested, "emptiness" is a "non-referring term," a "third-order capstone reflexive concept." 5. Runes 1942, 210, defines nihilism as follows: "The doctrine that nothing, or nothing of a specified and very general class, exists, or is knowable, or is valuable. Thus Gorgias held that (1) nothing exists; (2) Even if something did exist it could not be known; (3) Even if it were known this knowledge could not be communicated." This would certainly represent the philosophical view of "nonbeing" (abhii.va). -6. See§3.4.1. 7. Candrakirti's position on this issue is clearly stated in PSP, 75: satsu pramii.rze~u prameyii.rthii.b satsu prameye~v arthe~u pramii.rzii.ni I no tu khalu svii.bhii.vikl pramii.rzaprameyayob siddhib (Insofar as there are means of knowledge, there are objects of knowledge; and insofar as there are objects of knowledge, there are means of knowledge. It is certain that neither the means nor the object of knowledge can be established in and of itself.) Cf. Gadamer 1976, 50-51: "Just as the relation between the speaker and what is spoken points to a dynamic process that does not have a firm basis in either member of the relation, so the relation between the understanding and what is understood has a priority over its relational terms. Understanding is not self-understanding in the sense of the self-evident certainty idealism asserted it to have, nor is it exhausted in the revolutionary criticism of idealism that thinks of the concept of self-understanding as something that happens to the self, something through which it becomes an authentic self. Rather, I believe that understanding involves a moment of 'loss of self that is relevant to theological hermeneutics and should be investigated in terms of the structure of the game." 8. See §1, n. 18. 9. Kuhn's and Feyerabend's concept of "incommensurability" is especially relevant in this context. See, e.g., Feyerabend 1975, 229: "Should we welcome the fact, if it is a fact, that an adult is stuck with a stable perceptual world and an accompanying stable conceptual system, which he can modify in many ways but whose general outlines have forever become immobilized? Or is it not more realistic to assume that fundamental changes, entailing incommensurability, are still possible and that they should be encouraged lest we remain forever excluded from what might be a higher stage of knowledge and consciousness? . . . The attempt to break through the boundaries of a given conceptual system ... involves much more than a prolonged 'critical discussion' as some relics of the enlightenment would have us believe. One must be able to produce and to grasp new perceptual and conceptual relations, including relations which are
1
L
Notes to Pages 19-25
203
not immediately apparent and that cannot be achieved by a critical discussion alone." 10. On these terms, see Conze 1962, 166-173, ~nd accompanying references: "The three classes of enlightened persons." 11. MAB, 182.20. Tibetan translators chose to render the two components of this title as "a hero whose thought (sems dpa ') is of purity and perfection (byang chub)." 12. For references to editions and translations, see the bibliography. The most comprehensive modern study on the bodhisattva ideal is certainly Dayal 1932. Another very important classical source for our understanding of the subject is found in the Vimalaklrtinird£fasiitra (VN). 13 . Cf. La Vallee Poussin 1916, 739. 14. MVA 1:231-239. See Conze 1959, 20-24, for an English translation of the Dzpatikara]iitaka. 15. So La Vallee Poussin 1916, 744fT., where these stages are reviewed and discussed in accord with information provided in MVA and BB. 16. Cf. MA 6.4-7, where Candrakirti presents a very similar account of the requirements for proper study and actualization of emptiness. 17. Cf. La Vallee Poussin 1916, 745. 18. Suzuki 1900, chap. 2 (translation of the Mahiiyiinafraddhotpadafastra). 19. Suzuki 1963,307 . 20. See, e.g., MS 24.11: "When wrongly perceived, emptiness destroys a dull-witted person like a snake improperly grasped, or like a magical formula insufficiently mastered." 21. See part 2, note toMA 1.16, on the difference between a mundane and a supramundane perfection. On the distinction between wisdom (prajnii) as cause and as effect, see §4.6.2: "The relationship of perfect wisdom to the other perfections." 22. The archetype of all forms of reified thought is defined by the hypostatized concepts of being (bhiiva) and non being (abluiva).
SECTION THREE
1. The nucleus of this work appears in Sprung's bibliography (Sprung 1979); for a more detailed review of the literature, see Robinson 1967, Ruegg 1981, and Lindtner 1982. The most comprehensive information on all editions and translations of Madhyamika texts is incorporated into the bibliography to Mimaki 1982, which also refers extensively to other non-Madhyamika sources. 2. See the bibliography, under PSP The reader is cautioned to read Sprung's translation with an awareness of his presuppositions (see the discussion on Murti-who apparently had a strong influence on Sprung's work-in the next section; also seen. 25, below). 3. Nagarjuna's importance to the school is undisputed. However, there is some difference of opinion as to which texts can be legitimately attributed to him. Generally speaking, in addition to MS the following six treatises are ascribed to Nagarjuna by modern Buddhologists: (1) Yukti$as.tilca, (2) Vigraha-
204
Notes to Pages 25-27
vyavartanl, (3) Suhrllekha, (4) Ratnava/1, (5) Siinyatiisaptati, and (6) Vaida.lyasiitrapra -
kararuz. Cf. Lindtner 1982 for a detailed review of the evidence, and Williams 1984 for further consideration of this material . 4. For an English translation of Bu ston, see Obermiller 1931-1932 ; for Taraniitha, see Chimpa and Chattopadhyaya 1970. 5. What follows is no more than a cursory review of the major trends in Buddhist studies in the West. Several very competent and useful studies do not fall easily into any category, but these three phases are certainly the only thoroughgoing attempts at interpretation of the Madhyamika thus far proposed in the West. 6. Keith 1923 represents the Madhyamika as a doctrine based on a conception of reality as "absolute nothingness" (237, 239, 247, 267); and Kern 1896 calls it "complete and pure nihilism" (126). 7. See, e .g., MS 14. 7 and PSP, 490: sa bhavan svavikalpanayaiva niistitvam iiinyatartha iry evam viparitam adhyaropya . . , upalambham bruvarzo 'smasu (You, sir, falsely impute to emptiness a nihilistic meaning-your own reified concept . . . vilifying us with this insulting accusation .) cr. n. 24, below. 8. RV 1. 79 ab, d: I sdig da.ng bsod nams bya ba 'das II zab mo bkrol ba 'i don dang lda.n II [mu stegs gzhan dang rang giyang I] I gnas med 'Jigs pas ma myangs pa 'o I 9. Stcherbatsky 1927, 207 . Cf. ibid., 217 : "This is a purely Mahayanistic doctrine, viz. that Buddha, as soon as he became a real Buddha, did not speak, because human speech is not adapted to express, and human knowledge incapable to realize conceptually, that unique Substance of the Universe with which the Buddha himself is identified." 10. It may be objected that Murti is, after all , an Indian author, and therefore his work ought not to be considered in this review of Western scholarship. In response to this objection I would point out that his book has had a profound influence on the way the Madhyamika is understood in the West, and it is routinely cited as an authoritative source. See, e .g., Sprung 1979 and Bhattacharya, johnston, and Kunst 1978. 11. Murti 1960, 235. Examples of this sort of language can be multiplied indefinitely. But Murti's book is inconsistent , for elsewhere he seems consciously to avoid references to a "transcendent ground" or a "thing in itself'e.g. , ibid., 162-163 and 140. 12. Reference to a "transcendent ground" must, however, be defended against charges that concepts ofsuch an underlying reality would be nothing more than references to the fourth member of the tetralemma (catu~ko.ti). Cf. Ruegg 1983, 223-224: "Thus, according to mKhas grub rje and his school, the Madhyamika's refraining from asserting a thesis (da.m bca'; pratijiia) or tenet (khas len; abhyupagama) is [not] to be interpreted .. . as a quasi-thesis (which would in effect be comparable to position 4 of the 'tetralemma' [catu~ko.ti]where an indeterminate entity 'x' is posited and defined as being without the predicates 'A' and 'A'-in terms, perhaps, of a logic which is not two-valued and based on the principle of bivalence, or in terms of some 'logic of mysticism' postulating an ineffable entity) ." Cf. also ibid ., 206 n . 2, and MA 6. 146, where Candrakirti rejects the concept of an ineffable reality. The same criticisms apply to the claim that the Madhyamika is not philosophy but mysticism (see§ 5.6) .
I
••
Notes to Pages 27-32
205
13. MS 18.8: sarvam tathyam na vii tathyam tathyam ciitathyam eva ca I naiviitathyam naiva tathyam etad buddhiinufiisanam II 14. The N aiyayikas were a strict empiricist school of philosophy in ancient India. 15. I use the expression here as the nearest equivalent for the Sanskrit siidhyasama, with due regard for the information provided by Bhattacharya, Johnston, and Kunst 1978, 22-23 n. 3. Also cf. Bhattacharya 1974, 225-230; and Matilal1974, 221-224. 16. VV 29: yadi kiicana prati:fii.ii syiin me tata efa me bhaved dofah I niisti ca mama pratijii.ii tasman naiviisti me dofah II 17. Rorty 1982,161. 18. Ibid., 86. 19. See, e.g. , MS 15. 10: astlti fiiJvatagriiho niistlty ucchedadarfanam I tasmiid astitvaniistitue niiJrlyeta uicakfartah II(" Existence" is grasping at the eternal, "nonexistence" is the philosophy of nihilism: Therefore the wise man does not rely on "existence" or "nonexistence.") Candraklrti comments (PSP, 273): "These teachings of 'existence' and 'nonexistence' create obstacles [even] on the path to heaven and cause great misfortune."\ 20. PSP, 247-248: yo na kim cid api te parzyam diisyiimlty uktal; saced dehi bhos tadeua mahyam na kim cin niima pa7JJam iti briiyiit . . . I 21. See, e.g., MS 15.7~11 (especially v. 10), and Candraklrti's comments in PSP, 269-279. Also see §3.3: "History and doctrine of the Middle Way." 22. See §2, n. 5, above. 23. MS 24.1: yadi fiinyam idam saruam sarvam udayo niisti na uyayal; I catiirrziim iiryasatyiiniim abhiiuas te prasajyate I I 24. MS 24 .Sed: euam tr17J.Y api ratniini bruuiirziih pratibiidhase II 25. See MS 24.7 and Candraklrti's comments (PSP, 491): ato nirauafefaprapaiicopafamiirtham fiinyatopadifyate I tasmiit sarvaprapaiicopafamal; fiinyatiiyiim prayojanam I bhauiims tu niistituam fiinyatiirtham parikalpayan prapaii.cajiilam eva samuardhayamiino na fiinyatiiyiim prayojanam uetti II (Emptiness is taught in order ~o calm conceptual diffusion completely; therefore, its purPQse is the calming of all conceptual diffusion. You, however, in imagining that the meaning of emptiness is nonexistence, actually reinforce the net of conceptual diffusion. On this account you do not understand the purpose of emptiness.) Sprung's translation is particularly unreliable here and can be compared with this one as an example of the absolutist interpretation at work. 26. See his comments at PSP, 490, where he cites MS 18.5. 27. Gimello 1976a, 8-9. 28. This synopsis of Gudmunsen's argument parallels the one offered in Huntington 1983a. 29. Gudmunsen 1977,8. 30. Ibid. 31. See Ruegg 1981, 4-5 n. 11, on the problem of dating Nagarjuna. 32. Ibid.,6. 33. The small amount of biographical information is discussed in Walleser 1922 and Murti 1960, 88-91. See the reference to Ruegg in n. 31 above for other available sources.
206
Notes to Pages 32-37
34. See in particular Huntington 1986 for an edition and text-critical study of the Akutobhayii. 35. On the date of Aryadeva, see Lamotte 1944-1980, 3:1373. For general information on his life and writings, see Ruegg 1981, 50-54, and May 1979, 4 79ff. 36. Ruegg 1981,54-56. 37. Ibid., 60. 38. See Saito 1984 for an edition and partial English translation of this text. 39. Cf. Obermiller 1931-1932, 135. The immensely influential taxonomic labels that 'gyur ba (priisangika) and rang rgyud pa (sviitantrika) probably originated in the writings ofPa tshab Nyi rna grags (see Mimaki 1982, 45). 40. Chimpa and Chattopadhyaya 1970, 197. 41. Ruegg 1981, 71 n. 228. 42. Chimpa and Chattopadhyaya 1970, 206. 43. Ibid. Could this explain the lack of interest in Candraklrti's writings on the part of the Chinese? In fairness to him, see MAB, 218 (translated in part 2, note to 6.108). 44. Cf. Ruegg 1971, 453 n. 25. The positing oftantric masters supposed to be identical with early Indian teachers is quite common in late Indian and Tibetan Buddhist literature. 45. The most comprehensive bibliography ofCandraklrti's works appears in Lindtner 1979, 87-90. 46. There is good reason to suspect that the tantric texts are mistakenly attributed to the Candraklrti who wrote MAB, PSP, and so forth: cf. Lindtner 1979, 87 n. 12. 47. Ruegg 1981, 61; and May 1979,482. 48. For studies of Bhavaviveka and his philosophy, see Lopez 1987, Iida 1980, and Ruegg 1981, 61-63. Kajiyama 195 7 presents an interesting analysis of the Svatantrika-Prasangika debate. Also see Mookerjee 1975 for a discussion of the prasanga technique and its historical roots as a rhetorical device. 49. From the time of Bhavaviveka on, the Madhyamika became more and more preoccupied with logical and epistemological problems and much les1 concerned with pragmatics ( cf. Ruegg 1983, 239). 50. See PSP, 16: na ca miidhyamikasya svata~ svatantram anumiinam kartum yuktari pakfiintariibhyupagamiibhiiviit I (It is not suitable for a Madhyamika, because he does not accept the premises of his opponent, to present his own independently valid inferential judgment.) 51. Cf. §1, n. 11, above. _ _ 52. See §3.4: "Major philosophical themes of The Entry into the Middle Way." . 53. Modern Western scholars who see th~. Madhyamik,a as mysticism rather than philosophy are similar in this regard to Bhavavive~a. Cf. Betty 1983. 54. PSP, 24: na hi fabdii diirrdapiisikii iva vaktiiram asvatantrayanti I kim tarhi saryiim faktau vaktur vivakfiim anuvidhiyante I tataf ca parapratijniipratiftdhamiitraphalatviit prasangiipiidanasya niisti prasangaviparitiirthiipatti~ I 55. See Ruegg 1981, 1-3, on the name "Madhyamaka" (Madhyamika). 56. Vl, 10-17(1. B. Horner'stranslation). 57. SN3, 134.30-135.19;andSN2, 17.8-30.
Notes to Pages 3 7-41
207
58. PSP, 269.11. 59. V1, 10.18-20. 60. V1, 10.36-37. 61. MS 18.6: iitTTU!ty api prajiiapitam aniitTTU!ty api deiitam I buddhair niitmii na ciiniitmii kaicid ity api deiitam II 62. Cf. MS 22 and, in particular, 25.24cd: na kva cit kasya cit kai cid dharmo buddhena deiita!z I (The buddha did not teach anything to anyone at any place.) Also seen. 65, below. 63. Tenzin Gyatso 1975, 62-63. 64. Candrakirti discusses this distinction at length in PSP, 41-44. 65. MS 25.18: ti$_lhamiino 'pi bhagaviin bhavatlty eva nohyate Ina bhavaty ubhayam ceti nobhayam ceti nohyate II (Even though he is present, it is not said that the buddha exists, that he does not exist, that he both exists and does not exist, or that he neither exists nor does not exist.) 66. Wittgenstein 1953, §304. Cf. RV2.4, Candrakirti's insistence that the Madhyamika is not compelled to accept the antithesis of his opponent's view and my own reluctance to call Murti's concept of a "subjacent ground" wrong. 67. Cf. RV 1. 98: ajiiiinakalpitam piirvam paiciit tattviirthanirrtaye I yadii na labhate bhiivam eviibhiivas tadii kuha II (What was previously conceived through spiritual ignorance is subsequently discerned as the meaning of reality: When a thing is not found, how can there be a nothing?); and VV 43ab: prati$edhayiimi niiham kimcit prati$edhyam asti na ca k£rhcit I (I do not negate anything, nor is there anything to negate.) 68. Here is the crux of the difference between the Madhyamika and modern Western philosophers like Wittgenstein and Rorty, who have not pursued their work in soteriological dimensions. 69. Cf. MS 22.11: iiinyam iti na vaktavyam aiiinyam iti vii bhavet I ubhayam nobhayam ceti prajiiapty artham tu kathyate II (Nothing is to be called empty or not empty, nor is anything to be called both e111pty and not empty, or neither empty nor not empty: [the word emptiness] is, ho~ever, used in conversation as a conventional designation.) And, like all conventional designations, emptiness finds its meaning in its ability to accomplish a specific purpose defined in the speaker's intention (see PSP, 24), a purpose which is explained in MS 24.10: vyavahiiram aniiiritya paramiirtho na deiyate I paramiirtham aniigamya nirviirtam niidhigamyatel I (The [truth of the] highest meaning cannot be taught without relying on conventional practice, and without having appreciated the [truth of the] highest meaning, one will not realize nirvaQ.a.) 70. May 1979, 474: That is-pace May: "its highest, soteriological value." I think it would be a serious mistake to read the Madhyamika as saying that, e.g., water is not valuable for quenching thirst. 71. Cf. MS 25.19: na sarhsiirasya nirviirtiit kim cid asti viieJartam Ina nirviipasya samsiiriit kim cid asti viie$artam II (The everyday world is not the slight.est bit different from nirvaQ.a, nor is nirvaQ.a the slightest bit different from the everyday world.) In Ch'an and ·Zen, the Chinese, and later the Japanese, developed a particularly forceful interpretation of this element of Nagarjuna's thought. 72. PSP, 504: cakriidfny upiidiiya rathiirigiini rathafz prajiiapyate I tasya yii sviirigiiny upiidiiya prajitapti!z sii svabhiiveniinutpattih yii ca svabhiive[ n ]iinutpattih sii iiinyatii I
4
208
Notes to Pages 41-48
I saiva svabhiiviinutpattila~arzii iu'!)'atii madhyamii pratipad iti vyavasthiipyate I yasya hi svabhiiveniinutpattis tasyiistitviibhiiva/1 svabhiivena ciinutpannasya vigamiibhiiviin niistitviibhiiva iti I ato bhiiviibhiiviintadvayarahitatviit sarvasvabhiiviinutpattiiak!a~ii iu'!)'atii madhyamii pratipan madhyamo miirga ity ucyate II tad evam pratftyasamutpiidasyaivaitii viie$asamjnii/l iunyatii upiidiiya prajnaptir madhyamii pratipad iti II 73. R. Taylor 1967, 66. Nagarjuna recognizes the same problem in MS 20. 20: ekatve phalahetvob syiid aikyam janakaja'!)'ayob I prthaktve phalahetvob syiit tulyo hetur ahetunii II (If cause and effect were identical, then producer and produced would be the same; if cause and effect were different, then a cause would be equivalent to a noncause.) 74. MA 6. 168ab: I gal te rgyu yis hskyed par hya skyed de lta na de rgyu yin zhing 1 I gal te 'bras bu mi skyed na ni de med rgyu med can du 'gyur I 75. Hetob phalasyl' caikatvam na hi jiitupapadyate I hetob phalasya ciinyatvariz na h jiitupapadyate II 76. MA 6.170ab: I gang phyir 'di dag g'!)'is char yang ni sgyu ma dang 'dra dey phyir II bdag la skyon du mi 'gyur 'jig rten pa yi dngos po rnams kyang yoiLI1liid 159d I 'jig rten grags pa 'i kun rdzob ma brlag cig I 77. A. E. Taylor 1903, 167. 78. James 1963, 135. 79. Ibid., 138. 80. Ibid. 81. Ibid., 138-139. 82. Tenzin Gyatso 1975, 70. 83. MS 10. 16: iitmanai ca satattvam ye bhiiviiniiriz ca prthak prthak I nirdiianti na tiin manye fiisanasyiirthakovidiin II Nor, or course, is one therefore to jump to the conclusion that the "I" and objective things lack individualized reality. Cf. the formula for the catu,ko.ti. 84. Cf. MA 6. 78cd: "All the ordered structure of everyday experience is laid waste by this clinging to a real substance inherent in our opponents' philosophical views." In his commentary to this verse (MAB, 174) Candrakirti writes: 'jig rten ba 'i rnam par bzhag pa ]'ig rten kho na las grub pa I. . de !tar slob. dpon phyin ci log las rang gi mam par rtog pas shyar ba 'i lugs kyi lam kho nar zhugs pa I (The ordered structure of everyday experience is only established on the basis of this same everyday experience . . . . Those scholars [who posit a transcendental ground) have wandered down the path of a philosophical system created out of their own erroneous reified concepts.) 85. Feyerabend 1975, 73. 86. Ibid., 76. 87. Wittgenstein 1953, §133. 88. MA 6.110a-c: I de nyid du 'diji ltar skye med kyang II [mo gsham bu ltar] gang phyir 'jig rten gyi II mthong ba 'i yul du mi 'gyur ma yin pa I 89. MA 6.112a-c: I de phyir 'di /tar ston pas chos rnams kun II gdod nas zhi zhing skye bra/ rang bzhin gyis II yongs su mya ngan 'das pa gsungs gyur pa I 90. MA 6. 118ab: I bstan bcos las dpyad rtsod Ia chags pa 'i phyir II ma mdzad rnam grot phyir ni de '!)'id hstan I 91. MV, 1.23. 92. Cf Huntington 1983b, §4, "The ambivalent meaning of the term
Notes to Pages 48-51
209
93. PSP, 265: sarvadanutpiida eva hy agnyiidiniim paranirapelqatviid akrtrimatviit svabhiiva iry ucyate I I 94. cr. MA 6.168. 95. Cf.MA6.117. 96. Cf. MA 6. 25a-c: I gnod pa wd pa 'i dbang po drug rnams lcyis II hzung ha gang zhig 'jig rten gyis rtogs te II 'jig rten nyid las bden yin ... (Understanding based on apprehension by any of the six unimpaired faculties is true by the standard of everyday experience.) The sixth faculty is mind, with concepts as its objective referents. 97. Cf. MA 6.81cd: I 'bras phyir 'di dag med kyangyod do zhes II 'jig rten ngor byas bdag ni smra bar byed I (With reference to the nature of everyday experience, we say: "Even though things do not exist, they exist"-and this is done for a specific purpose.) See also 6. 166; and VV 28: samvyavahiiram ca vayam niinahhyupagamya lcathayiima/:1 I (We always speak with reference to everyday practice.) Soteriological truth is not expressed by a special metaphysical language but by using everyday words and expressions in their conventional, pragmatically grounded meanings. Even to say that, from the perspective of the truth of the highest meaning, "nothing exists" is to speak with a purpose in mind, and not with the idea that one's words link up with or point to an objectively present reality defined by these words. Cf. MS 24.10cd: vyavahiiram aniiirirya paramiirtho na deiyate I (The truth of the highest meaning is taught only by relying on conventional practice.) Emptiness (iiinyatii) is itself only a conventional designation (prqjnapti), its meaning dependent (upiidiiya) on everyday experience '(MS 24.18). 98. MAB, 225: btags par yod bzhin Ia sogs pa 'i tshogs pa Ia hrten nas me long Ia gzugs binyan btags pa tsam dmigs pa dang I htags par yod pa lea ba Ia sags pa la brten nas lchyim du btags pa nang Irk hzhin du shing gi rten can nags btags pa dangji /tar rmi lam nama skyes pa 'i rang bzhin can gyi sa bon las ma skyes pa 'i rang bzhin can kyi myu gu skye bar dmigs pa rk bzhin du I dngos po btags par yod pa thams cad kyi btags pa yang dngos po btags par yod pa 'i rten can du rigs te I Cf. VV 66: sa yadi svabhiivatafz syiid griiho na syiit pratirya sambhiita/1 (If perception were to come about in and of itself, it would not be dependent.) 99. These criteria are not drawn together in this way in any Miidhyamika text that I know. I have inferred them from my study of the levels of samvrti (cf. Huntington 1983b, §3.1.3). 100. Tenzin Gyatso 1975, 64. 101. PSP, 491 (see above, n. 25). Prapaiica is actually not confined to conceptual mechanisms. As several modern commentators have noted, Indian texts do not always distinguish clearly between external objects and ideas. Cf. Lindtner ~982, 271 and n. 240, where he mentions in particular artha 'object' or 'meanIng,' upalabdhi 'existent' or 'conceived,' sarya 'truth' or 'reality,' sad 'real' or 'good,' and prapaiica, which refers both to ontic and to epistemic diffusionboth to the universe as the totality of the contents of perception and to language a~d conceptual thought. Thus, when conceptual thought becomes confused and d 1_ffuse, so does the external world. (The translations here are mine, not Lmdtner's.} This ambiguity is graphically represented in the Buddhist doctrine of the six senses and their objects (tfyatanas). For an extended discussion of Papanca (;= prapanca) in the Piili literature, see NiiQ.ananda 1976.
210
Notes to Pages 51-5~
102. Cf. MAB, 105-106, andSN2, 95.1-9. 103. Wittgenstein calls it "language on holiday" (1953, §38). Cf. ibid., § 132 : "The confusions that occupy us arise when language is like an en gin( idling, not when it is doing work." 104. MA 6.158: I de ni de nyid du 'am 'jig rten du II [mam pa bdun gyis] 'grul 'gyur min mod kyi II rnam dpyad TTll!d par 'jig rten nyid las 'dir II rang giyan lag br~~ nas 'dogs pa yin I 105. MA 6.159ab, d: I de nyidyan lag can de cha shas can II shing rta de nyid byeG po zhes 'gror bsnyad I (I skye bo rnams Ia len po nyid du'ang grub IJ I 'jig r~ grags pa'i kun rdzob ma brlag cig I 106. Cf. PSP, 24. 107. Terminology of this sort follows directly on the heels of neo· Kant ian epistemological distinctions such as subject and object, representation and the real, etc. 108. Cf. my comments on Murti's idealization of the Madhyamika, aoove, as well as RV2.4 . 109. Here and in the preceding paragraph I have paraphrased the material inMA 6. 171-176. 110. VV 29, commentary: [tasmat] sarvabhave~u iiinye~v atyantopaiante~u pra/crtivivi~!U kula/! pratijna I kuta!z pratijrialalqarzaprapti~ I kut~ pratijniilak!arzapraptikrto doia(l I Cf. ibid., 38-39 and MS 7.11, where the same concept of connection is used in a deconstructive analysis oflight and darkness. Nagarjuna was particularly suspicious of any technical use of prapti, as the term had already been used by the Sarviistivadins as a sort of glue for establishing a necessary connection between dharmas. 111 . .MA 6. 120: I nyon mongs skyon rnams ma Ius 'Jig tshogs Ia //Ita las byung bar blo yis mthong gyur zhing II btkzg ni 'di yiyul du rtogs byas nas II rna/ 'byor pa yis bdog ni 'gog por byed I . 112. MS 24.14ab: sarvam cayujya~ tasya iiinyatayasyayujya~ I i 13. MA 6.37: I dngos po stong po gzugs brnyan la sogs pa II tshogs la bltos rnams ma grags pa yang min II ji lt4r tier ni gzugs brnyan sogs stong las II shes pa de yi rnam par skye 'gyur ll4r I 114. MA 6.38: I de bzhin dngos po thams cad stong nayang II stong nyid dag las rab tu skye bar 'gyur II bden pa gnyis su 'ang rang bzhin med po 'i phyir II de dag rtag pa ma yin chad pa 'ang min I 115. Cf. PSP, 24. 116. All of the statements of the Madhyamika texts are situation-bound teachings. Compare, e .g., RV 3.63 : I gang la dug ni phan 'gyur na II de Ia dug kyang sbyin par bgyi II kha zas mchog kyang mi phan na II de Ia de ni sbyin mi bgyi I (Give even poison to those whom it will help, but do not give the best food to those whom it will not help); and 4.94-96: yathaiva vaiyakararzo matrkam api pii.thayet I buddho 'vadat tatha dharmam vinryanam yathiikJamam II ke~·am cid avadad dharmam papebhyo vinivrttaye I ke~am cit purzyasiddhyartham ke!iim cid dvayaniiritam II dvayaniiritam eke~am gambhlram bhirubhi!apam I iiinyatiikarurziigarbham eke~iirn bodhisadhanam II (Just as a grammarian would teach even the alphabet, so the buddha taught the Dharma to his disciples according to the dictates of the particular situation. To some he taught a doctrine that would discourage sinning; to some,
I.
l1 I
Notes to Pages 57-60
t
211
a doctrine to aid in earning merit; and to some, a doctrine based on duality. To some he taught a doctrine not based on duality, a means to attain awakening, profound and frightening, the source of emptiness and compassion.) Also CS 8.20: sad asat sadasac ceti nobhayam ceti kathyate I nanu vyii.dhiva.Sat sarvam arqadham namajiiyate II ([The buddha's teachings] mention the existent, the nonexistent, the existent-and-nonexistent, and what is neither. Everything whatsoever becomes medicine on account of[ the various J diseases [that must be treated].) 117. Death is the paradigm of unforeseen change, and therefore meditation on death is considered to be the single most valuable spiritual practice. 118. See VV29, commentary, discussed at n. 110, above. 119. PSP, 248-249, where Candraklrti quotes from the Ratnakii..tasritra. Upalambha is the mental component of perception, the mental image that corresponds with the sensory impression. The point here is that the word emptiness does not derive its meaning from the interaction between a mental image and its objective referent. 120. TKP, 139.13-140.1, in particular: rtog pas bzhag pa de la rang rang gi bya byed 'thad pa ni . . . dbu ma 'i lta ba mthar thug pa 'i dka' sa yang 'di nyid do I The entire passage is translated and discussed in Huntington 1983a, 331. I have translated ita ba here as "philosophy," taking into account the fact that the Tibetan serves as a translation for both darfana (as in the present instance) and dr~.ti (cf. Ruegg 1983, 206). 121. Cf. Matilal 1971, 162-165; Kajiyama 1966, 38-39; and Ruegg 1981, 78ff. and 1983, esp. 225-227. 122. Cf. the citation from Wittgenstein at n. 66 above, and nn. 66 and 67. 123. Cf. PSP, 3 73: tatra ntismin parapratyayo 'stlty aparapratyayam paropadefiiga· "!)lam svayam eviidhigantavyam ity artha/1 I yathii hi taimirikii vitatham kefama.Saka· ~ikii.diriipam pa.Syanto vitimiropadeieniipi na faknuvanti keiiiniim yathiivad avasthitam svariipam adarfananyiiyeniidhiganlavyam alaimirikii ivii.dhigantum kim tarhy ataimirikopadesiin mithyaitad ity etiivanmiilrakam eva pratipadyante I yadii tu timiropaghiityavipantafiinyatiidarfanii~janiinjitabuddhinayanii/1 santa~ samutpannatattvajniinii bhavanli tadii tal lattvam anadhigamanayogena svayam adhigacchantiti I (That reality is "not depen-
dent on anything else" means that it can only be realized personally, and not by relying on instruction from another source. Those with an optical defect see the forms of hairs, flies, gnats, and other such things which are not real, but even with instruction from someone with healthy eyes they are not capable of realizing the intrinsic nature of these hairs-that is, they are incapable of not seeing them as a person with healthy eyes docs not see them. Rather, they only reflect, on the basis of instruction from those with healthy eyes, that [the hairs] are illusory. When they are treated with the medicine of direct perception of emptiness, which reverses the damage of their optical defect, and they acquire the eyes of a buddha, then they realize for themselves the reality of [those hairs, etc.)-by non realization.) Also Mtl/3, 109- t 10 (translated and discussed in §5.2, below), and BCA, 364. 124. See in particular §4.6.2: "The relationship of perfect wisdom to the other perfections." 125. Several of the earliest Yogacara texts are ascribed to a mysterious Maitreyanatha. An ancient Indian tradition tells us that th«Se texts were dictated to
212
Notes to Pages 60-63
Asanga by the bodhisattva Maitreya, who is responsible for their content. The opinion of modern scholars is divided as to whether or not Maitreya[natha] is an historical figure (see Willis 1979, 3-12). For information on the various editions and translations ofYogacara texts, see Conze 1962, 3.3, and the bibliographies in Anacker 1984, Kochumuttom 1982, and Willis 1979. And for a discussion of the historical development of Yogiiciira thought, see Frauwallner 1976, 255-407. 126. The Yogiiciira doctrine of reflexive awareness is discussed in Mookerjee 1975, 319-336. Candrakirti devotes quite a few stanzas to criticism of this concept. 127. DP 1-2: manopubbangamii dhammii manose.t.thii manomayii, manasii ce padu.t_thena bhiisati vii karoti vii tato nam dukkham anveti cakkam va vahato padam . . . manasii ce pasannena bhiisati vii karoti vii tato nam sukham anveti chiiyii va anapiiyinl. 128. TSNhas been discussed in a number of places. See in particular Kochumuttom 1982, 90-126, and Anacker 1984, 287-298. Scriptural authority for the doctrine is found in SN, chaps. 6 and 7 and LA §55. 129. TSN 37ab: dvayor anupalambhena dharmadhiitiipalambhatii I and TSN 4cd: tasya kii niistitii tena yii tatriidvayadharmatii I (What is it that is brought about by the nonexistence of[duality]?-There is the nondual dharmatii.) Cf. MAB, 132-133 (translated in part 2, note to 6.43) and ibid., 161-162 (part 2, note to 6.68), where Candrakirti uses this same expression in a different context. 130. TSN 4ab: tatra kim khyiity asatkalpa~ katham khyiiti dvayiitmanii I and 35a, d: viruddhadhlkiirarratviid . . . mok;iipatter ayatnat~ I 131. Ibid., 23a: kalpito vyavahiiriitmii and 33: dvayasyiinupalambhena dvayiikiiro vigacchati I vigamiit tasya ni!panno dvayiibhiivo 'dhigamyate I 132. Ibid., 23cd: vyavahiirasamuccheda/1 svabhiivaf ciinya i~yate I 133. Ibid., 16: dvayiibhiivasvabhiivatviid advayaikasvabhiivata~ I svabhiiva~ parini!panno dvayaikatviitmako ma~ I and 37: dvayor anupalambhena dharmadhiitiipalambhatii I dharmadhiitiipalambhena syiid vibhutvopalambhatii I 134. Ibid., 2: yat khyiiti paratantro 'sau yathii khyati sa kalpit~ I pratyayiidhlnav.rttitviit kalpaniimiitrabhiiva~ I 135. Ibid. 136. Ibid., 4ab {cf. n. 130, above). 137. Ibid., 5a: asatkalpo 'Ira koicittam. 138. MVK 1.2: abhiitaparikalpo 'sti. 139. MVKB 1.2: tatriibhiitaparikalpo griihyagriihakavikalpa~ I; MVK 1.2: dvayam tatra na vidyate I; MVKB 1.2: dvayam griihyam griihakam ca I Cf. TSN 26: trayo 'py ete svabhiivii hi advayiilambha~a~ I abhiiviid atathiibhiiviit tad abhiivawabhiivat~ I 140. TSN 27-30: miiyiikrtam mantravoiiit khyiiti hastyiitmanii yathd I iikiiramiitra1J1 tatriisti hast! niisti tu sarvathii II svabhiiv~ kalpito hastl paratantras tadiikrti~ I yas tatra hastyabhiivo 'sau parini!panna ~yate II asatkalpas tathii khyiiti miilacittiid dvayiitmanii I dvayam atyantato niisti tatriisty iikrtimiitrakam II mantravan miilavijiiiinam kii$.thaval tathatii matii I hastyiikiiravad e!.tavyo vikalpo hastivad dvayam II (Here and below I use Kochumuttom's translation, with minor alterations.) 141. TSN 34: hastino 'nupalambhoi ca vigarnaf ca tadiikrte~ I upalambhaf ca k~.tha· .rya miiyiiyii1J1 yugapadyathii II . 142. See Kochumuttom 1982, 198-200, where he gives several examples ol
Notes to Pages 64-67
213
such interpretations in the work of A. K. Chatterjee, T. Stcherbatsky, C . D . Sharma, P. T. Raju, and S. N. Dasgupta. 143 . Ibid., 118-119. This is not typical ofKochumuttom's approach to the Yogaciira texts, and although I am not convinced of his thesis that "the Yogiiciira writings ... are open to interpretation in terms of realistic pluralism" (p . 6 n. 1, p. 197, and passim), I find his book well researched and written in a clear, engaging style . Compare the introduction to Willis 1979, 1-66, for an alternative to the idealistic interpretation. 144. PSP, 248-249, translated and discussed in §3.4.3. 145 . VV29 andMA 6. 171-176. 146. TSN 32cd: upalambhanimittii tu prtiptib. 147 . BB, 47 .22-25: atas tad riiptidi-samjnakam uastu[tena riip'iidi-samjiiakena] prajiiapti-uiid 'iitmanii fiinyam. kim punab tatra riip'iidi-samjiiake uastuny auafi~.tam . yad uta tad eva riipam ity evam-iidi-prajiiapti-viid'iiirayab. 148. Ibid . , 47 .25-48 .2: tac cobhayam yathtibhiitam prajiiniiti yad uta vastumiitram ca uidyamiinam vastu-miitre ca prajiiapti-miitram. 149. Ibid., 4 7. 16-19: katham ca punab su-grhltii fiinyatii bhauati . . yat punar atriiuafi!.lam bhavati. tat sad iluistlti yathiibhiitam prajiiniiti.
!50. Willis 1979, 56 n . 64. 151. MS 22.11: Seen. 69, above. Unfortunately, the gerundive/passive construction loses much of its original force in English translation . 152. PSP, 444-445: sarvam elan na vaktavyam asmiibhib II kim Ivan ukte yathiiuad avasthitam svabhtivam pratipattii (?) pratipattum na samartha iti I ato uayam apy riropato vyavaharasatya eva sthituii vyavahiiriirtham vinryajaniinurodhena siinnyam ity api
briima~
I afiinyam ity api siinyiiiiinyam ity api naiua siinyam niiiiinyam ity api briimab I . . . na fiinyam niipi ciiiiinyam tasmiit sarvam vzdhlyate I sattviid asattviic ca madhyamii pratipac c'a sii II iti I 153. R V 2.4 : dntafrutiidyam muninii na satyam na mr~oditam I pak~iid dhi pratipak~a~ syiid ubhayam tac ca niirthatab II This is a clear statement of the Madhyami-
ka's attitude toward all philosophical views. 154. Cf. MA 6.94. 155. MA 6. 86d: I rgyal bas sems tsam 'jig rten byed por gsungs I 156. MA 6.90 : I gal te gzugs yod mod kyi de Ia ni II sems bzhin byed pa po nyid yod ma yin II des na sems las gzhan pa 'i byed pa po II bzlog gi gzugs ni bkag pa ma yin no I 157 . MA 6.92ab: l_gzugs med na ni sems yod ma 'dzin zhig II sems yod nyid na 'ang gzugs med ma 'dzin zhig I 158 . MA 6.81 : I ji /tar khyod kyis gzhan dbang dngos 'dod /tar II kun rdzob kyang ni bdag gis khas ma blangs II 'bras phyir 'di dag med kyangyod do zhes II 'jig rten ngor byas bdag ni smra bar byed I 159 . MAB, I 79 : I ji /tar khyod kyi rang dbang du gnas nas I rang gi gzhung lugs kyis gzhan gyi dbang gi ngo bo 'phags pa 'i ye shes kyis thugs su chud par bya ba zhig smra ba de ltar ni kho bos kun rdzob pa ma yin te I 'o na ci zhe na I yod pa ma yin yang 'jig rten kho na la grags par gyur pas yod do zhes 'jig rten gyi ngo bo kho nar brjod pa yin te I de rjes su h1]od pa ni de !dog pa 'i thabs yin pa 'i phyir ro II ji skad du I beam /dan 'das kyis 'jig rten ~ga dang lhan cig rtsod kyi I nga ni 'jig rten dang mi rtsod de I gang jig rten na yod par dod Pa de ni ngas lr.yang yod par bzhed do II gang 'jig rten na .med par 'dod pa de ni nga
214
Notes to Pages 69-82
yang med par bzhed do zhes gsungs pa ita bu 'o I Candraklrti is quoting SN 22,
64.103; cf. also PSP, 370.
SECTION FOUR
1. The dates here are proposed by May (1979, 483). Siintideva's biography was written by Pezzali (1968) and reviewed by Jong (1975). His most famous work, the Bodhicaryiivatiira, was translated into English by Matics (1970) and by Bachelor (1979) . See the "Liste des sources indiennes" in Mimaki 1982 for other translations. Siintideva's other main composition, the Silqiisamuccaya (SS), was translated into English by Bendall and Rouse (1922). 2. BCA 7.25 . 16.6-7 . 3. 4. MPPS644c; cf. Ramanan 1966, 97. 5. MPPS63c; translated in Ramanan 1966, 132. 6. 22.26. 7. BB, 140. 8. 66.27-30. 9. BB, 189. 10. SS, 104. 10. 11. DB, 60, 64; SS, 212; BB, 20. 12. MSA, 49. 13. Ibid., 68. 14. See part 2, 3.12, n . 7, for the three bodies of a buddha. 15. BB, 200ff. 16. BCA 7.2 . 17. BCA 7.49. 18. Cf. Dhargyey 1974, 46-48. 19. Ibid., 47, 20. Ibid. 21. AK6 .29. 22. Horner 1954, 301. 23. BCA 5.4-6. 24. 68.25-26. 25. BB, 109. 11-17. 26. Sometimes translated "discernment." 27. Gimello 1976a, 33. 28. :feyerabend 1975, 168. 29. Ibid., 72 . 30. Gimello 1976b, 132-133; cf. idem 1976a, 34-35. Italics are mine. 31. VM 14. Also cf. Nyanatiloka 1972, 122. 32. BB, 109 .18-22. 33. The conceptual scheme behind this use of meditation and the other per fections is discussed in greater detail below in §5 . 34. SS, 67 .24. 35. Ibid., 67 .22.
ss,
ss, ss,
ss,
..
b·
Notes to Pages 83-99
215
36. Nanamoli 1976, 8 (VM 1.19). 37. This is a paraphrase of VM 1.20; cf. Nanamoli 1976, 8, for the entire section in translation. 38. Cf. Nanamoli 1976, 84- (VM 3.2) and 91 (VM 3.8): "[Concentration) should be developed by one who has taken his stand on virtue that has been purified by means of the special qualities of fewness of wishes, etc. and perfected by observance of the ascetic practices." 39. Ibid., 84--86, and esp. VM 3.6. 4-0. A 4-, 203; U, 56; V2, 239. 4-1. Nanamoli 1976, 4-79-4-81. 4-2. Cf. VM 14-A, and Nanamoli 1976, 4-80. 4-3. Dhargyey 1974-, 168-169. H. Becker 1973,87. 4-5. BCA 9.1. 4-6. See part 2, 1.16, n. 20 for this threefold emptiness. 4-7. Seepart2,3.12,n. 7. 4-8. From here to the end of this section, my discussion follows Prajiiiikaramati's commentary on BCA 9.1 (= pp. 34-9-351 ). 4-9. BCA, 34-9. 50. MVl, 7.14-. 51. AK6.3, p. 326.13-16. 52. Becker 1973, 282-283. 53. Cf. MA 6. 78. My account of these "extreme views" owes much to the discussion in Ramanan 1966, 151ff. 54. Whitehead, among others, has written on the problems created by naive and total reliance on logic as the sole arbiter of truth: "Sharp cut scientific classifications are essential for scientific 'method, but they are dangerous for philosophy, because such classification hides the truth that the different modes of natural existence shade off into each other" (Whitehead 1938, lecture 8, "Nature Alive"). 55. CS 16.25, as cited in PSP, 16: sad asat sadasac cetiyasya pak~o na vidyate I upalambhaf cirq~iipi tasya vaktum na fakyate II Cf. also May 1978, 239: "Just as empty things only can_ act as causes, because if they are not empty they are selfcontained and consequently have neither ground nor power to produce any effect, just so a non-empty word would be self-contained and consequently totally devoid of application and inefficient and useless as philosophy." 56. MAB, 298-299; cf. also RV2A. 57. On the various numbers and types of these illustrations, see Murti 1960, 160 n. 1, and the relevant appendix; Conze 1975, lH; Lamotte 194-4--1980, 2028ff. and 2045; and Tauscher 1981, 18-26. The pedagogical intention of these is indicated by MA 6.186cd. 58. For a discussion of the problem of the "original" six perfections, see Warder 1970, 357fT.; and Dayal1932, 167fT. Dayal considers the last three perfections superfluous (269), but it is not clear why. 59. Without having first divested oneself of reified concepts it is not possible to act in harmony with any situation, since, from the Buddhist perspective, these misconceptions and the affiictions associated with them result in a radi-
216
Notes to Pages I 00-1 I I
cally misleading situation. As Conze has written , " The reader should always bear in mind that false views are not merely wrong knowledge, but wrong knowledge on the part of a viewer who is in a false position and surrounded by distorted objects" (1967, 234) . 60. Cf., e.g., BCA 5.99. 61. ss, 15.12-15. 62. See part 2, 6.211, n. 218 . 63 . BB, 43 .1-:-22. 64. Evans-Wentz 1951,271. 65 . SS, 15. 12-15. 66 . Cf. Dayall932 , 148fT. 67 . DB, 49 .8-9. 68 . Ibid ., 52-53. 69 . Ibid ., 55.22-23. 70. It is difficult to distinguish clearly between the conceptsjnana and prajnii primarily because there seems to be some ambiguity in the use of these terms in the Mahayana literature (see, e .g., LA, §66). Many modern Western scholars are conient to identify the two of them (e. g., Dayal1932, 269). Lindtner 1982, 268fT. , gives a more sensitive analysis , with useful references. Guenther 1958, 20 n . 9, offers a dissenting opinion and an interesting discussion of alternative meanings of the wordjnana in Buddhist philosophy.
SECTION FIVE
1. Cf. §4.6.3: "Candrakirti's presentation of the Sixth Stage." 2. Feyerabend 1975, 31-32. 3. VV29; see also VV43 and RV 1.98, discussed in §3.1. 4. Feyerabend 1975, 32. 5. Ibid ., n. 23. Study of the Madhyamika may provide new responses to Put· nam, Davidson, and other critics of incommensurability. See Feyerabend 1987 for a continuing discussion of the problems. 6 . MA 6.30-31 ; also cf. Kuhn 1962 , 111. 7. Cf. VV30-49 . 8 . VV30. 9. Cf., for example, MA 6.80ab: ltha snyad bden pa thabs su gyur pa dang I don dam bden pa thabs byung gyur pa sle I (Conventional truth is the means, the truth of the highest meaning is the goal); also 6 . 78cd and 158-159; and MS 24.10 , 36. 10. PSP, 10-11: tad evam hetupratyayiipe/qam bhiiviiniim utpiidam paridipayatii bhagavatii ahetvekahetuvi~amahetusambhiitatvam svaparobhayakrtatvam ca bhiiviiniim ni~id dham bhavati I tan mjedhiic ca siimvrtiiniim padiirthiiniim yathiivasthitam siimv.rtam svariipam udbhiivitam bhavati I sa evediinim siimvrta/1 pratityasamutpiida!l svabhiiveniinutpannatviid I iiryajnaniipe/qayii nasmin nirodho vidyate I yavan niismin nirgamo vidyate . .. 11. MAB, 109-110; cf. BCA, 364. Also see §3 , n . 123 .
12. Cf. Rorty 1979, 325 : "In order to guard against the confusions of traditional empiricism, we need make no more of the gestalt-switch in question
Notes to Pages I I 3-1 2 7
217
[from Aristotle's 'constrained fall' to Galileo's 'pendulum'] than the fact that people became able to respond to sensory stimulations by remarks about pendulums, without having to make an intervening inference." 13. Cf. MS 14.7 and §3.1: "Sources for the study ofMadhyamika thought." 14. Thurman 1980,327. 15. See the citation from Cavell in § 1, at n. 17. 16. MA 11, epilogue, v. 4. "Previous cultivation" (Tib. sngongoms; Skt. piirvabhiivani.i) refers first to "the wisdom composed of meditative cultivation" (bhiivaniimayi-prajiiii), and secondarily to practice of the other perfections. 17. Bateson 1980, 232. 18. MS 25.19: na samsiirasya nirviiruit kim cid asti vife~artam Ina nirviirtasya samsiiriit kim cid asti vife~artam II 19. Cf. §1, n. 24. 20. Cf. Rorty 1979, 8-9: "It is the notion that human activity (and inquiry, the search for knowledge, in particular) takes place within a framework which can be isolated prior to the conclusion of inquiry-a set of presuppositions discoverable a priori-which links contemporary philosophy to the DescartesLocke-Kant tradition." 21. Cf. once again PSP, 24, cited at the close of §3. 2. 22. Compare VV 29, where Nagarjuna denies the possibility of any fallacy accruing to his arguments, because he has no proposition. 23. MA 6.35: I gang phyir dngos po 'di dag mam dpyad na II de nyid bdag can dngos las tshu rol tu II gnas myed ma yin de phyir 'jig rten gyi II tha snyad bden la mam bar dpyad mi bya I See the accompanying note to this verse and to 6.158. 24. MA 6.112a-c: I de phyir 'di ltar ston pas chos mams kun II gdod nas zhi zhing skye bral rang bzhin gyis II yongs su mya ngan 'das pa gsungs gyur pa I 25. VP, §3, pp. 28-29. 26. In this area we can expect to learn much from the work of later Indian and Tibetan philosophers who strove to integrate the Yogacara and the Madhyamika so as to recognize and reflect the centrality of this interaction between consciousness and its objects. Owen Barfield provides an interesting discussion of this and related issues from a non-Buddhist perspective (see the bibliography). 27. Cf. MS 24.14ab: "One who is in harmony with emptiness is in harmony with all things." 28. Rorty 1979, 12; also cf. his chap. 8 on the distinction between "edifying" and "systematic" philosophy. 29. Cf. BCA, chap. 9, where Santideva describes his concept of "the sameness of self and other" (pariitmasamatii), which forms the theoretical foundation for a meditation practice called "the substitution of one's self for another" (pariitmaparivartanii). 30. Cavell1966, 167 n. 31. Betty 1983, 134. 32. Ibid., 131. 33. The mystical interpretation of the Madhyamika is closely aligned with references to an ineffable dimension. Cf. §3, n. 12. 34. Rorty 1981, 165 .
__
..... .
218
Notes to Pages I 2 7- I 49
35. MS 24.7: atra briiTTUJl,l fiinyatayam na tvam vetsi prayoJanam I . .. tata~ roam vihanyase I 36. Wittgenstein 1965, 28. 37. Gouldner 1973, 2. 38. Ibid. 39. Ibid., 3. Cf. my discussion of the Priisangika-Sviitantrika debate above in §3.2. 40. Gouldner 1973, 10-11. 41. Rorty 1979, 361. 42. MS 15 .6: svabhavam parabhiivam ca bhavam cabhavam eva ca I ye paiyanti na paiyanti te tattvam buddhafrisane II 43. The same kind of comph::xity and tension is present in the advaitavedii.nta of Saii.kariiciirya and his followers. Early medieval Indian philosophers had clearly begun to sense that talk of an absolute in rationalist or idealist terms was soteriologically ineffective . In the modern West, a growing disillusionment with neo-Kantian scientific rationalism has made the use of this vocabulary similarly inefficacious. 44. M. C . Taylor 1978, 53-54. 45. Ibid. , 45. 46. Ibid. 47 . Cf. MA 6. 186andMS22 .11. 48. The charge of relativism is brought against the Priisaii.gika in MA 6.171 . 49. The attempt to escape these charges by retreating into a mystical interpretation has already been discussed above. 50. Rorty 1982, 168. 51. Ibid., 171-173. 52. Rorty 1979, 346. 53. Gadamer 1976, 101. 54. Ibid., 121. 55. SeeJong's remarks, cited above in §1. 56. Rorty 1979, 371-372. The Miidhyamika, of course, reduces this claim as well to emptiness: The meditator sees the intrinsic nature of things "as it is" by not seeing it (cf. §3, n. 123). 57. RV4.94-96(see §3, n. 116). 58. Hamilton 1950, 151. 59. Twilight of the Idols: translated in Kaufmann 1968, 482-483. 60. Gadamer 1988, 244 . 61. Culler 1983, 150-151. 62. Ibid., 149. 63. Becker1973, 189. 64. Ibid., 202. 65. PV, 260-261. Cf. the note to 6.173.
STAGE ONE 1, In MPPS, the sriivaka (hearer) is identified by five primary characteristics (Ramanan (1966), pp. 288 ff.J: (1) distaste for the world, (2) constant thought
..
Notes to Page 149
219
of liberation for himself alone, (3) renunciation of the world, (4) extinction of the mental affiictions, and (5) eventual attainment of escape from fear and suffering. When he learns of the emptiness of the self and hears the four noble truths, the sravaka feels contempt for old age, disease, and death, and he follows a path of aversion leading toward escape from his own suffering. He seizes on the teaching of impermanence as an objective, ultimate truth and fails to penetrate to the soteriological truth of emptiness revealed in the scriptures of the Prajii.iiparamitii and the Madhyamika treatises. The pratyekabuddha (solitary buddha), referred to here as the "middling buddha," differs from the sravaka insofar as his understanding of emptiness is greater, though it is still meager in comparison with the nondualistic knowledge of a fully awakened buddha (cf. TKP, 7). Also, his merit is less, and he is born only during an epoch when there is no incarnate buddha (MS 18.12). Both the sriivaka and the pratyekabuddha -·are followers of the Hlnayiina. They contrast with the Mahayanists in their lack of universal compassion and in their failure to develop skillful means, yet they can enter the bodhisattva path by deepening their appreciation of emptiness. _2, "Knowledge" (Tib. blo; Skt. mati, buddhi, orjiiana) could also be translated as.:'intelligence," but in any case the reference to advayajiiiina is clear. 3. Candraklrti mentions three types of compassion (MAB, 10): (1) compassion which has for its object all sentient beings; (2) compassion which has for its object all sentient and insentient beings; and (3) compassion devoid of object. This last type is alluded to in MA 1.4 . 4. Cf. TKP, 19: "Like buckets traveling round and round on a paddlewheel, so sentient beings wander without self-determination back and forth between the highest heaven and the lowest hell." The generation of the thought of awakening represents striving for freedom from bondage to volitional action (karma). 5. "Grows" (Tib. rab bsngos; Skt. pari'(liimita) is also used as a technical term referring to the transfer of merit. 6. Tib. kun tu bzang po 'i smon pa; Skt. samantabhadrapra'(lidhiina: This must be read as a reference to the vow taken by the bodhisattva Samantabhadra in the presence of the buddha. The description of this vow, given in SP, chap. 26, enumerates the ways in which the bodhisattva resolves to serve for the good of all living beings . 7. Tathii coktam candraklrtinii: ;ata/1 kule bhavati cai!a tatluigatanam samyojanatrayam api k!atam asya sarvam I modam bibharti ca param sa hi bodhisattva{! syallokadhiitufatake Parijataiakti~ II (See La Vallee Poussin 1907, 264 n. 2, where this Sanskrit is cited from a commentary on the Namasamglti.) 8. "Tathagata" (Tib. dt bzhin gshegs pa) is an epithet commonly applied to any buddha, meaning "thus come" or "thus gone." It can be understood as a reference to the doctrine that all buddhas travel the same path to awakening. For the Madhyamika, "tathagata" refers to the harmony between the buddha and the "thusness" or "suchness" of the world. Cf. MS 22.16: "The intrinsic nature of the tathagata is the same as that of the world: just as the tathagata is devoid of intrinsic being, so is the world"; AS, 154.18-19: "This is the thusness ~rough which the bodhisattva, the Great Being, comes to absolute realization In perfect and unsurpassable awakening, and thereby obtains the title 'tathagata.' " 9. Tib. kun tu sbyor ba; Skt. samyojana: These are: (1) attachment to philosoph-
220
Notes to Pages 149-150
ical views (Tib. Ita ba mchog 'dzin; Skt. dr~#pariimaria); (2) attachment to conventional standards of morality, custom, and ritual practices (Tib. tshul khrims brtul zhugs mchog 'dzin; Skt. illavratapariimaria); (3) doubt or confusion about the possibility of attaining awakening (Tib. the tshom; Skt. vicikitsii). 10. The Tibetan gyo bar nus par gyur ba is quite clear in itself, but it does not seem to concur with the Sanskrit parijiitaiakti!J,. The Sanskrit, however, is obscure, and there is no adequate evidence about its meaning or the reason for the Tibetan translation. 11. During the first stage ( cf. TKP, 40). 12. A "bad migration" (Tib. ngan 'gro; Skt. durgat1) includes birth in any of the hell regions and birth as an animal or a hungry ghost (preta). Bad migrations are also realms of experience accessible through meditation as well as states of mind occurring spontaneously when the requisite conditions are present. With reference to this last aspect in relation to all six realms of samsiira, cf. Conze 1962, 256: "One and the same object, say a river, leads to a transformation of inward thought, a 'pure fantasy' as we might say, and that for all practical purposes the external object does not exist. The hungry ghosts, by way of retribution of their past deeds, see nothing but pus, urine and excrement; the fishes find there a home; men see fresh and pure water which can be used for washing and drinking; and the gods of the station of infinite space see only space." 13. Tib. 'phags pa brgyad pa; Skt. ~.tamaka iirya: Both Candrakirti (MAB, 17) and Tsong kha pa ( TKP, 41) identify this as a reference to the irotiipanna (stream enterer), who would normally be assigned the first (lowest) rank in the series of iiryapudgalas, or Buddhist saints. 14. Cf. PSP, 353: (MA 1.8d) diirati.gamiiyiim tu dhlyiidhika!J, I 15. The reference here is to severaljiitaka tales, stories of the buddha's previous incarnations, when on occasion he is said to have sacrificed even his own flesh as an act of generosity. Candrakirti explains this passage in MAB, 24, by pointing out that just as one infers fire from smoke, so the bodhisattva's insight into the emptiness of all things can be inferred from his generosity. 16. An "object of pleasure" (Skt. bhoga) is food or material property of any kind, or anything that can be possessed and enjoyed. 17. Here and in 1. 7 we have followed the translation suggested by La Vallee Poussin. The idea expressed in this verse is that by giving offerings to Buddhist monks, the donor will eventually find a suitable teacher for himself. 18. See MAB, 28, where the reference to nirviiQa is made specific. 19. "Inner (subjective) and outer (objective) possessions" are thoughts, feelings, and concepts, and external objects of all kinds, sentient and insentient. 20. Here is the critical distinction between generosity as a mundane perfection (laulcikii piiramitii) and generosity practiced as a supramundane perfection (lokottarii piiramitii). Each perfection is divided in this way. For a bodhisattva practicing supramundane generosity, every aspect of the circumstances surrounding the act of giving is perceived in the full context of its active relations. This is technically referred to as trimarz(iala-pariiodhana "purification of the three spheres," which is the recognition that the three aspects of any practice-the actor, the action, and the object or recipient of that action-are interdependent and have no independent meaning or existence (ni!J,svabhiiva). An attitude of nonclinging is cultivated on the basis of this understanding.
,.. I
Notes to Pages 150-151
221
21. "Joy" (muditti) is the source from which this first stage takes its name, as the initial phase in the generation of the thought of awakening. Cf. TKP, 82: "That thought of the truth of the highest meaning, associated with this first stage, is itself most pure; and the heart (or mind) in which it abides is an excellent receptacle, because just as the moon makes beautiful through its white light the sky which is its receptacle, so this [heart or mind) is made beautiful with the radiant light of wisdom." "Receptacle" (iifraya) refers to the intellectual, emotional, and volitional elements of the bodhisattva and to his physical body.
,.r~~,eee
STAGE TWO
,.. I
tete€f?~ ecsr~~~'-'oeco (~ e·~ael) ~te~~.
1. The "ten paths of pure conduct" involve abstention from killing, stealing, and sexual misconduct (three physical acts); lying, causing dissension among others by means of slander, abusive language, and idle or senseless speech (four verbal acts); and covetousness, thoughts of harming others, and attachment to beliefs and philosophical views (three mental acts). Cf. R V 1. 8-9. 2 . Cf. MAB, 37: "By 'peace' is meant restraint of the senses (indriyasariwara), and 'radiant light' means that his body has a luminous appearance." The peace of mind associated with restraint of the senses is considered prerequisite to the practice of meditation at the fifth stage. 3. Cf. MAB, 37-38: "In theAryaratnakutasutra [the buddha gave the following teaching to Kiisyapa]: Kiisyapa, if there is any monk practicing morality, bound to regular discipline, whose conduct in religious rites and observances is most distinguished, who sees danger in the smallest faults, who correctly practices the fundamental teachings he has learned, who through purification of the action of body, speech, and mind has completely purified his life, and yet he holds some doctrine of a real self, this, Kasyapa, is a transgression of the moral code (vinaya), and the primary type of hypocrisy among those who are possessed of morality. 0 Kii.Syapa, the rest are as follows: If there is any monk who correctly assumes the twelve practices of an ascetic, and yet he holds some philosophical view of the objective supports [of his practice as possessing independent meaning or existence] and continues seizing at 'I' and 'mine,' this, Kiisyapa, is a transgression of the moral code, and completes the four types of hypocrisy among those who practice morality." Regarding the "objective supports" (Tib. dmigs pa; Skt. iilambana) of the bodhisattva's practice, cf. MAB, 39: "He is without any dualistic thinking about the 'existence' or 'nonexistence,' etc., of the objective supports of his morality : viz. , the being with respect to which he abstains [from immoral action), the act [of abstinence], and the actor" (i.e., himself) . This same point was made with reference to the practice of generosity (see stage 1, n. 20). Morality is not considered pure, as long as there is any thought of individual gain or loss . 4. Cf. MAB, 40: "If he is independent and lives in a divine or human or sorne such migration like a brave man freed from bondage and living in some agreeable country, and if he does not then take a firm hold of himself, then like a ~rave rnan bound and cast over a steep precipice he will fall into a bad migrahon . Once this has happened, who can pull him up? From then on he will be entrenched in this bad migration where he must suffer inju•y, and later, if he
222
Notes to Pages 151-152
should be born among humans, he will have to endure the double ripening [of his immoral behavior)" (i.e., short life and frequent illness). Buddhist teachers continually stress the importance of recognizing the unusual opportunity presented by life as a human being. 5. Tib. rang byang chub la bdag nyid nges; Skt. pratyekabuddhtiyiitmanlya: La Vallee Poussin 1907-1911, pt. 1, 289, translates: "les predestines I' illumination des pratyekabuddhas." 6. "Incomparable bliss" (nai/.zireyasasukha) or "awakening" (bodhz) is realized only when reified thought and the associated mental afflictions end. "Temporary happiness" (abhyudayasamsiirasukha) refers to the enjoyment of privileged birth-that is, birth as either a human being or a god. Birth in divine realms insures continual happiness for the duration of that particular lifespan, until the results of previous volitional action (karma) are exhausted. Because in life like this there is no immediate dissatisfaction with circumstances, Buddhist teachers point out that there is also no incentive, and consequently no opportunity, to work toward liberation from the cycle of reified thought, volitional action, and suffering. Even the bliss of the gods is not eternal, though, and reentry into states of misery is only a matter of time: "One person experiences pleasure for hundreds of years during a dream, and then he awakens; another experiences pleasure for a single moment only, then he also awakens. For both of them, when they have awakened, the pleasure is gone, and just this is the similarity, at the time of death, between a person whose life is long and one whose life is short" (BCA 6.57-58). The greatest physical suffering in the whole of cyclic existence is said to be inflicted in the lowest realm of hell; but the most acute mental anguish is experienced by the gods of the highest heaven at the moment when it first becomes evident that they will soon fall from what had appeared to be eternal bliss. For this reason, birth as a human being is considered preferable to birth as a god. The human experience of constant vacillation between pain and pleasure provides the impetus to search for a radical solution to the problem offear and suffering. 7. See CV, 301 (Horner's translation): "And the Blessed One said to the Bhikkhus: "There are, 0 Bhikkhus, in the great ocean, then, eight astonishing and curious qualities, by the constant perception of which the mighty creatures take delight in the great ocean. And what are the eight? ... 0 Bhikkhus, the great ocean will not brook association with a dead corpse. Whatsoever dead corpse there be in the sea, that will it-and quickly-draw to the shore, and cast it out on the dry ground. This is the third [of such qualities)." Cf. the third of the eight "marvelous, wonderful things" (acchariyii abbhutti dhammii) of the ocean (A 4, 197fT; V 2, 236fT.; U 53ff.): "As the ocean rejects a corpse, so the monkhood rejects evildoers." Tsong kha pa attributes this quality of the ocean to the "extremely pure divine serpents" who live in its waters (TKP, 91). Candrakirti makes no mention of this particular expression in his autocommentary, and La Vallee Poussin 1907-1911, pt. 1, 292, seems to have misunderstood it: "de meme qu'il y a incompatibilite entre I' ocean et Ia saveurdouce." 8. See above, stage I, note 20. 9. Cf. AfAB, 45-46: " 'Immaculate' (vimalii), because it is made stainleso through the tenfold path of virtuous conduct; this name is in accordance with the meaning attributed to the second stage of the bodhisattva. Just as the
r I
a
I
b
r I
Notes to Page I 53
223
immaculate light from the autumn moon dispels the heat that torments living beings, so this [stage called) ' Immaculate' radiates from that moon which is the bodhisattva and dispels the heat kindled by immorality that burns in [their) hearts . Even though it is not entangled in cyclic existence and so is not worldly, still it is the glory (in) of the world because all the most excellent qualities are associated with it, and because it engenders the majesty of a sovereign of the four quarters (ciiturdvlpaka-iivara-sampad). "
STAGE THREE
I
h
+
1. Cf. TKP, 92: "Why is it called 'Luminous'? This is in conformity with the symbolic character [of the name), because at the moment that the third stage is attained there appears a light which is capable of stabilizing and tranquilizing all the conceptual diffusion of dualistic appearances-[ the light of) the fire of (nondualistic) knowledge which burns away without remainder its fuel, the object(s) of knowledge." 2. Candrakirti points out (MAB, 48) that the bodhisattva's patience is in part based on his understanding of the horrible consequences that such an act of mutilation will bring down upon its perpetrator at some future time. 3. La Vallee Poussin seems to have misinterpreted the ji /tar gcod (Skt. yathii chidyate) in the second line of this stanza. It is probable that this line must be read in accord with our translation here, that is, as a reference to the "three aspects" of the act of mutilation. This example is often used to illustrate the virtue of patience. (See BCA, chap. 6, which · contains a number of similar instances of patience.) 4. Any action produces two consequences. The immediate and gross suffering endured in bad migrations is the first and most severe, called the "ripened consequence" (vipiilcaphala). The secondary consequence (ni!Yflndaphala) is manifest in afflictions (kleias) like clinging, antipathy, and so forth, which function as the provocation for acts like the one described above in 3.2. By patiently enduring the suffering of this life(= world), which is the latest and most benign of the vipiilcaphala, a person can finally eradicate the nifyandaphala that would otherwise cause further misery. Cf. MAB, 50~ "The suffering inflicted on the body by the worst enemies through the use of a razor-sharp blade is the final consequence (of murder) . One who has previously committed the act of murder must (first) suffer the horrible ripened consequence in hell, or under the conditions of an animal birth, or in the realm ofYama. (This ripened consequence) results in the elimination of unpleasant consequences for beings who still must endure the remaining secondary consequences, that is, the mental afflictions . Why should one give way to anger, injuring another being so that this ripened consequence (already being experienced) is transformed all over again into the cause for the appearance of further consequences that in turn result in even greater suffering? It is as though (a patient) were to [transform) the last swallow of medicine intended to cure his sickness (into the cause of a still more serious disease). Therefore it is only reasonable to exercise extreme patience with the cause of immediate suffering, just as one would behave toward a doctor who resorts to the use of a razor-sharp scalpel in order to cure a disease."
224
Notes to Pages 154-155
5. The five "higher mental faculties" (abhijiiiis) are listed by Candraklrti (MAB, 56): (1) the ability to perform apparent miracles (Tib. rdzu 'phrul; Skt. rddhi:); (2) the ability to hear sounds outside the range of normal perception (Tib. lha 'i rna ba; Skt. divyairotra:); (3) the ability to read the thoughts of others (Tib. pha rot gyi sems shes pa; Skt. paracittajiiii.na); (4) the knowledge of former births (Tib. sngon gyi gnas rjes su drang pa; Skt. purvaniviisii.nusmrtz); and (5) the ability to see beyond the range of normal vision, as well as to perceive the character and destiny of other beings (Tib. lha 'i mig; Skt. divyacalc;us). 6. Sugata 'one who has proceeded well.' Cf. stage 1, n. 8, about tathagata. 7. Generosity, morality, and patience can all be practiced by laypeople as mundane perfections which will lead to favorable rebirth-ideally, to rebirth under conditions more conducive to the cultivation of wisdom and compassion. As supramundane perfections, however, these same three are the cause of the buddha's "body of form" (riipakii.ya), which comprises both the "body of bliss" (sambhogakii.ya) and the "body of transformation" (nirmiirzakiiya). The body of form is distinguished from the "body of the Dharma" ( dharmakiiya). Cf. MAB, 62-63: "The provisions (sambhiiras) which are the cause ofbuddhahood are twofold: the provision of merit (purzya) and the provision of knowledge (jiiiina). Here, the provision of merit comprises the first three perfections, and the provision of knowledge is composed of meditation (dhyiina) and wisdom (prajiiii). Energy (vlrya) is assigned as a cause of both. In this particular context, the provision of merit is cited as the cause of the body of form possessed by the blessed buddhas, which appears in various marvelous and incomprehensible guises. The body of the Dharma is unproduced, and the cause [of its realization) is the provision of knowledge." This doctrine of the two (or three) bodies of a buddha was taken up by the Yogacara as an elaboration of an original conception within the Hlnayana Abhidharma. There, dharmakii.ya referred either to the entire corpus of the teachings in general, or to the buddha himself as a particular embodiment of those teachings. The dharmakiiya can be understood in this context as the intrinsic nature of all buddhas, in opposition to the particular spatiotemporal manifestation of each individual buddha, which is his riipakiiya. The Yogacara innovation seems to have consisted primarily in giving a metaphysical interpretation to the original doctrine. The dharmakiiya is, for that school, the eternally present buddha nature, the principle of awakening. The riipakiiya h further subdivided into: the sambhogakiiya, a "perfect" form embodying all tht characteristics attributed to the buddhas, and enthroned in appropriately splen· did surroundings; and the nirmiirzakiiya, a magical apparition finding its sourn in the sambhogakiiya and appearing in the world for the edification of all livin~ beings. The "provisions" and their relationship to the bodies of the buddha an discussed in MA 11.5-18 and by N agarjuna in R V 3. See Conze 1962, 172, 232 ff., for further discussion of this doctrine and its classical sources.
STAGE FOUR 1. Cf. MAB, 64: "He who lacks enthusiasm for good action is completely incapable of engaging in [the practice of] generosity [and the other perfections), and therefore these other qualities are never produced."
Notes to Pages 155-156
225
2. " Discernment" is Tib. blo gros [kyiJ tslwgs, Skt. matisambhiira or dhlsambhiira. Here blo gros is synonymous with ye shes(= [advaya).jnana). 3. Cf. MAB, 68 : "At this stage, within [the bodhisattva) the philosophical view of a real, substantial 'I' is eradicated. So it is said: 'Sons of the conquer· ors, situated at this bodhisattva stage [called] "The Radiant," the bodhisattva i1 devoid of all arising and descending concepts, reflections, notions of perma· nence , notions of mine-ness, and notions of property-that is, any [idea] fol· lowing from belief in a real, substantial self which is founded on strong clingin~ to the [conventional] "1," to a sentient being, to a life force, a nourisher, a mar [not in DB), a person, or to the psychophysical aggregates, the dhatus, or th< ayatanas. ' " (Cf. DB, chap . 4, p. 25: tasya khalu punar bhavantojinaputra bodhisattvasyiisyam arci~matyam bodhisattvabhtimau sthitasya yanlmlini satkiiyadr~.tiptirvangamlin; atmasattvajlvapo~apudgalaskandhadhiitvayataniibhinivtiasamucchritany unmiiijitani ni· miiijitani vicintitani vitarkitani keltiyitiini mamliyitiini dhaniiyitiini niketasthiiniini tan sarvarzi vigatani bhavanti sma I For kelayita MAB has brtan pa (= sthira, drdha , nitya): the Sanskrit is also sometimes translated as bstsal pa.) For "arising and descend· ing concepts ," see La Vallee Poussin 1907, 311 n . 2: "Je pense que unmiiijita, nimiiijita sont de simples variantes de samaropa, apaviida, ou iivytiha, nirvy tiha, et signifient: affirmation, negation." "The philosophical view of a real , substantial self" (Tib. 'jig tshogs Ia Ita ba = raT!g du Ita ba; Skt. satkayadntz) is a technical expression specific_ally denoting the concept of a personal (subjective) self; that is , the concept of an "I" as opposed to the apprehension of any other sentiem self external to the conceptualizing "L" The expanded form of the expression reads: 'jig tshogs Ia Ita ba 'i ri 'i rise mo nyi su mtho ba; in Sanskrit, vimiatifikharasamudgatab satkayadr~.tifailiib . Although there is a slight discrepancy between the Tibetan gloss and the Sanskrit original, both refer to the "twenty towering peaks of the mountain, which is the belief in a real, substantial (abiding) 'I' within transitory, composite things." The twenty aspects of the reified concept of a self are discussed in MA 6.144-145 ; actually these aspects are four types of reified ·concepts applied to each of the five psychophysical aggregates. The four basic types, as associated with the first of the aggregates, form (rtipa), are ( 1) the self is form, like a sovereign ; (2) form qualifies the self, like an ornament; (3) form is possessed by the self, like a slave ; and (4) form contains the self, like avessel (cf. MVP 208) . Also see MAB 5. 7 (commentary), and Lamotte (1944-1980) , 2:737 n . 3; and 4:15-17, for his lengthy note on the expression.
STAGE FIVE 1. Cf. MSA 20.35 : "Bringing living beings to [spiritual] maturity and guarding their own thoughts , the wise conquer suffering [at this stage), and therefore it is called 'The Unconquerable' " (sattviinam paripiikai ca svacittasya ca rak~arza dhlmadbhir jfyate du!zkham durjaya lena kathyate !). 2 · Cf. MAB, 69 : "A bodhisattva abiding at the fifth bodhisattva stage cannot be subdued even by the devaputramaras found in all world systems , to say nothing of their servants and minions . Because of that, this stage is called 'The Uncon~uerable. ' " All evil is rooted in spiritual ignorance (auidya), which is manifest In innately occurring patterns of reilied thought. Cf. BCA , 177: . "All intellec-
226
Notes to Page I 57
tual processes have the intrinsic nature of reified thought, because their objective supports are [themselves) without any objective support. And all reified thought whatsoever has the intrinsic nature of spiritual ignorance, because it grasps at nonentities. So it is said: 'Reified thought itself takes the form of spiritual ignorance' " (sarva hi buddhir alambananiralambanataya vikalpasvabhfiva vikalpa ca sarva evavidyasvabhfiva/1 avastugrfihitvat yad aha I vikalpab svayam evayam avidyanlpatam gata/1 iti 1). Spiritual ignorance in the form of reified thought is one of several mental afflictions (kksas) that are associated with the experience of evil, usually subdivided into four principal types: ( 1) klesamfira: evil experienced through the mental afflictions of clinging, antipathy, pride, attachment to philosophical views, and doubt or incurable cynicism; (2) skandhamfira: evil that comes from the reified concept of a real, substantial self felt to abide within or among the psychophysical aggregates; (3) mrtyumfira: the transient nature of all things, experienced most dramatically as death; and (4) devaputramfira: the anthropomorphic personification of evil.
STAGE SIX 1. MAB, 73: "This stage is [called] 'The Directly Facing' because [the bodhisattva J directly faces the Dharma of a perfect buddha." 2. Conditionality is the same as dependent origination (pratityasamutpada). "Things are by nature similar to a reflection" (MAB, 73) . 3. The reference here to "cessation" (nirodha) is multifaceted. The reader should consult Conze 1962, 113-116 and 236, for a brief discussion of the meaning of this concept in VM and AK. 4. "Discrimination" (Tib. blo; Skt. matz) is here synonymous with "wisdom" (Tib. shes rab; Skt. prajna). The same simile is used in BCA 9.1 and AS, 87 .3. 5. MAB, 77: "This treatise, which bears the fruit of teachings in perfect accord with [the concept of] dependent origination, should be revealed only to one who has through previous meditative cultivation planted the seeds of emptiness in his [psychophysical) continuum-it is not for any others. This is because even though they may hear about emptiness, these others [derive from such teachings] the most meaningless noti(lns stemming from misconceptions about emptiness. On the one hand, those who are relatively unintelligent [simply] abandon the teachings on emptiness and travel on to bad mig1ations; while on the other hand, [strict rationalists) imagine that emptiness means nonexistence. Relying on this erroneous interpretation, they develop and propagate nihilistic philosophical views." 6. Cf. SBS, fol. 14 (p. 387): prthagjanatve 'pi nisamya siinyatiim pramodam antar labhate muhur muhub I prasfitio:jasriivallipata-(pramodajiisravinayata-) locana/1 taniiruhotphullatanui ca jiiyate II Here and in following citations from SBS, the parentheses contain La Vallee Poussin's reading where it differs from the one adopted by Bendall. 7. Ibid ., )I<JI tasya sambuddhadhiyo 'sti hijam tattvopadesasya ca bhajanam sa/1 I iikhy' ~am asmai paramarlhasatyam tadanvayiis tasya gurza bhavanti II 8 . Ibid .• fol. 15 (p. 387): si1arn samiidiiya sadaiva vartate dadD.ti danam karorzam ca seva~ I titi~·ate tatkuialam ca hodhayc pra(fmri-?)rzfimayaty evajagadvimuktaye II
TNotes to Pages 157-158
227
9. MAB, 81: "That is to say, he who desires the stage [called] 'The joyous.' This [path] has the characteristics that are about to be explained. Now, in order to furnish information on the nature of the right view of things there are [passages] in the sutras, as for example the words of the Aryadafabhiimilca (DB, 31 ): 'Sons ofthe conquerors, the bodhisattva who has completely fulfilled the path at the fifth bodhisattva stage passes on to the sixth bodhisattva stage by virtue of [his comprehension of] the ten [types of] sameness of all things. What are these ten? (1) All things are the same insofar as they lack any causal sign (nimitta); (2) all things are the same insofar as they lack any distinguishing characteristic (la/qarza); (3) likewise they are unoriginat~d; (4) unborn; (5) isolated; (6) pure from the beginning; (7) devoid of conceptual diffusion; (8) neither accepted nor rejected (cf. La Vallee Poussin 1907, 278 n. 2, about iivyiiha and nirvyiihii); (9) all things are the same insofar as they are like a mirage, a dream, an optical illusion, an echo, the moon in water, a reflection, or a magical creation; and (10) all things are the same insofar as they are exempt from the duality of existence and nonexistence. Comprehending in this way the intrinsic nature of all things, he [develops] great patience (TTUJhii/qiint1) in accord [with his understanding] and so reaches the sixth bodhisattva stage, "The Directly Facing." Therefore, the master [Nagarjuna] determined in this connection that through rational instruction in the sameness of things as regards their non-origination, the other [types of] sameness would easily follow, and so he placed [the following verse] at the beginning of his Miidhyamikaiiistra: 'Neither from itself, nor from another, nor from both, and certainly not devoid of cause; no things whatsoever are produced at any time or in any place.' "MS 1.1 is here cited by Candrakirti as an introduction to MA 6.8. After presenting the four alternatives, he proceeds to analyze the implications of each one in greater detail. 10. Cf. PSP, 13: tasrruid dhi tasya bhavane na gu~o 'sti kai &ijjiitasya janma punar eva &a naiva yuktam I 11. MAB, 82: " 'An (entity]' refers to that which is being produced or that which accomplishes the action of production, that is, to the sprout. 'From itself means from the individual essence of just that [entity) which is being produced. Therefore the sense of the statement is as follows: 'This sprout's own individuality is not produced from its own individuality.' Why is this? Because there is nothing to be gained from an existing sprout's own individuality arising from the same existing individuality, just because [this individuality] has alreadypreviously-come into existence.'' 12. 'jig rten 'dir is supplied in TKP, 152. In other words, such an assumption would contradict direct perception . 13. MAB, 83: "If one asserts that the seed already produced is produced ,_ again, [then in this event] what obstacle would there be to its being born all over again? And yet, the continual reproduction [of the seed] must be stopped somehow so that the sprout can be produced.'' Cf. TKP, 152: "Just this seed would be reproduced without interruption until the end of all existence ." . 14. MAB, 83: "It may be supposed that the contributing conditions assoCiated with the production of the sprout-the water, time, and so forth-transform the seed and give birth to the sprout; and this sprout [then] destroys the s~ed, since it would be contradictory for it to exist simultaneously along with [ns] creator. hi this way the abovementioned fallacy would be avoided, and
228
Notes to Pages 158-159
because the seed and the sprout would still be different [from each other], production from self would indeed be possible . .. . This [argument] also is inadmissible, however. . . . Because the seed and the sprout are not different, it is unreasonable that the sprout should destroy the [seed], which would be tantamount to its destroying its own individuality." 15. Tib. nus; Skt. vi:rya. La Vallee Poussin 1907-1911, pt. 2, 281 n. 5, calls the term problematic, and suggests that it is some kind of medico-magical potential for healing. "Flavor" (rasa) and "ripening" (vipiika) are also medical terms: 16. If a cause and its effect are absolutely identical, then on what grounds are we to distinguish between the two of them, and how is it that they appear to be different? 17 . MAB, 85: "Since, appearing as the sprout, the individuality of the seed would not be perceived as it is in its essence, so, because of its not being different from the seed, the individuality of the sprout should also not be perceivedjust as the seed's individuality [is not perceived]." 18. Cf. SBS, fols. 18-19 (p. 390): loko 'pi caikyam anayor iti niibhyupaiti n~.te 'pi pafyati yata~ phalam e$a hetau I tasmiin na tattvata idam na tu lokataf ca yuktam svato bhavati bhiiva iti prahJlpyam II
19. MAB, 86: "For just that [reason], the master [Nagarjuna] made a distinction [between soteriological and conventional perspectives in this matter] and repudiated production in a general way, stating that it is not from self." 20. MAB, 87: "It may be said that entities do not arise out of themselves : This is certainly the case, and the [first) alternative is reasonable. But you have [also] said: 'How can it [arise] from others?' (6.8a), and that is not reasonable." Candrakfrti devotes more space to this second alternative than to any other, probably because it most closely conforms to common sense and empirical observation (see 6.22). The Prasangika directs these arguments toward the following Buddhist schools: the Svatantrika-madhyamika, the Yogacara, the Sautantrika, and the Vaibha~ika. With the exception of the Samkhya (included under the first alternative), the Jain (the third alternative), and the Carvaka (the fourth alternative), all non-Buddhists are included in this category. 21. Cf. SBS, fols. 19-20 (p. 390) and PSP, 36: anyat prati:tya yadi niima paro 'bhavi$yajjiiyet[a] tarhi bahul~ iikhino 'ndhakiir~ I sarvasyajanma ca bhavet khalu sarvataf ca tulyam paratvam akhile janake ( 'janake) 'pi yasmiit II
22. MAB, 89 : "That is, because of[ its] quality of being other." 23 . MAB, 90 : "Just as the grain of rice, because it is the producer, is different from the rice sprout, its result, so fire, coal, a barley seed, and so forth-which are not producers [of a rice sprout]-are also [different from the rice sprout). And just as the rice sprout is produced from the grain of rice which is different [from it], so it would be produced from fire, coal, a barley seed, and so forth. And just as the rice sprout which is different [from it] arises from the grain of rice, so a jug and cloth will also [arise from the rice grain]. This is, however, not perceived, and therefore there is no [production from another]." According to this second alternative, a cause and its effect are absolutely separate or self-sufficient. If this were true, the Prasanglka argues, the gap between the two could never be bridged, there could be no possible context for a relationship, and the
Notes to Page 159
229
distinction between a cause and a non-cause of any given effect would be altogether negated. The flame, for example, is different from darkness : By what criteria are the two not related as cause and effect? 24. Cf. SBS, Col. 20 (p. 390): iakyam prakartum iti kiiryam ato niruktam iaktamyad asya janaru sa para 'pi hetu~ I janmaikasamtatigataj janakiic ca yasma1 cJ chalyamkurasya ca tathii [pi na kodraviide~ J II La Vallee Poussin has janakiic ca tasmiic chalyamkurasya na tatha --- --II and the following note . "Le manuscrit porte ... yasmiit chalyamkurasya ca. -On peut lire : na tathajananam yaviide~." 25 . MAE, 91 : "The nature [of the relationship between] cause and effect rests upon a particular mode of 'otherness,' and not on otherness in general." The opponent here is attempting, through the use of his notion of a continuum, to reestablish the normal context of relationship that must exist between two things he has previously defined as completely separate. The continuum would seem to make it possible for cause and effect to be simultaneously different and yet not different. 26. The flower seeds are by definition different from the rice sprout simply because they do not possess its characteristic qualities; and if the grain of rice is designated as "other" than the rice sprout, then it must be so designated for the same reason. 27 . Cf. ibid.: asry amkurai ca na hi bijasamiinakiilo (na samiinakiilo) bijam kut~ paratayiistu vina paratvam I janmamkurasya na hi sidhyati tena bljiit samryajyatiim parata udbhavatiti p~~ II 28 . MAB, 92-93 : "One can see that {two individuals named] Maitreya and Upagupta (cf. n. 89, below) are interdependent and different [from each other] only because they exist simultaneously, but the seed and its sprout are not such that they can be imagined as simultaneously [existent], since until the seed has been altered the sprout does not exist . When, in this way, the seed and the sprout do not exist simultaneously, then the seed can possess no {quality of] 'otherness' with respect to the sprout. And if this {quality of] otherness is not present, then it is false to say that the sprout is produced from another." 29. MAB, 94: "The above claim that the seed and the sprout do not exist simultaneously may be challenged as unreasonable, as follows : Just as the ascent and descent of [the two ends of] a scale's balance occur simultaneously, so it is at the moment when a seed is being destroyed and the sprout being produced . This comes about in such a way that at exactly the moment when the seed is destroyed, at precisely that moment-simultaneously-the sprout is produced ." 30. Cf. PSP, 545: janmonmukham na sad idam yadijiiyamiinam niiionmukham sad ~pi niima nirudhyamiinam I i~_tam tatM katham idam tulayii samiinam kartrii vinii janir zyam na ca yuktariipii II 31 . Candrakirti provides the following explanation (MAE, 95): "In this case, 'what is being produced' inclines in the direction of production {and is not yet actually produced], therefore it belongs to the future; while 'what is being destroyed' inclines in the direction of destruction [and is not yet actually destroyed], and so it belongs to the present. In this way, that which does not exist because it is not yet produced is produced ; and that which does exist because it Is already present is destroyed. Given this state of affairs, what possible resem-
230
Notes to Page I 59
blance is there to the circumstances surrounding the operation ofthe scale? The two ends of the scale's balance are actually present, and therefore the ascending and descending movements can [logically be said to] occur simultaneously; however, the seed belongs to the present and the sprout to the future, and on this account [one cannot logically assert that] they exist simultaneously. The [problem with the seed and the sprout] is therefore not in any way analogous to the example of the scale. And if our opponent should happen to believe that even though two things do not in fact exist simultaneously, still their actions can take place simultaneously-then [we must object] : This also is untenable, for it cannot be admitted that the actions of things are independent of the things themselves." 32 . MAB, 96 : "The agent (kartr) of the impending action of being produced, that is to say, the sprout, belongs to the future, and so does not [yet] exist. Granted that [the sprout] does not exist, there is then no basis (tifraya).[for its action], and that [action], does not exist [either]. And since no [action] exists, how can it be simultaneous with the destruction [of the seed]? On this account it is illogical [to assume] that the two actions [of production and destruction) are simultaneous. As [Niigiirjuna] has written (MS 7 .17): 'If any unproduced entity whatsoever existed anywhere, then it would be produced; [but] why would an entity be produced when it is nonexistent? ' The meaning of this [verse) is as follows: If any entity, as, for example, a sprout, were to exist unproduced prior to production, then it would [eventually) be produced. However, prior to production nothing whatsoever or wheresoever can be established as existent, because it is unproduced . Therefore, prior to being produced, the entity that furnishes the basis for the action of production does not exist, and without this [basis), what will be produced?" The argument is summarized (CSt 1.18): " Because the sprout arises neither from a destroyed seed nor from an undestroyed seed, you declare that all production is like the manifestation of a magical illusion." 33 . MAB, 97: "[An opponent might propose the following:] The seed and the sprout do not exist simultaneously. Consequently there is no 'otherness' (paratva), and production is illogical [under such circumstances] (according to the terms of the second alternative) . However, when there is simultaneity, then in that event, because 'otherness' would be present, production also would be feasible . As for example the eye and form, and so on, along with feeling (vedo.nii) and the other coappearing [factors, are causes which] act to produce the simultaneous [and related effect of] visual cognition." (Visual perception is produced from a simultaneously existing array of causal factors.) The response to this claim is (MAB, 98): "If you assert that the eye and so on and perception (sam jnii), etc., exist simultaneously [along with visual cognition J and serve as the conditions for that visual cognition, then they most certainly are 'other' with respect to the [existing visual cognition]. However, because there is absolutely no need for the arising of that which [already) exists, so there would be no production; and if you want to avoid the negation of production by asserting that [visual cognition) does not exist, then in that case the eye fan external [object, these lines] are intended to refute the existence of the entity alone." 100. MAB, 166: "If the dependent exists empty of both the 'apprehended [object]' and the 'apprehender,' then according to you, what knower would apprehend the existence [of such an entity]? It is illogical that it should apprehend itself, because there is an implicit contradiction in [the notion of] introceptive activity (svlitmanivrtti): a sword edge does not cut itself; the tip of a finger does not touch itself; even a well-trained and expert acrobat cannot climb up on his own shoulders; fire does not burn itself; and the eye is not visible to itself. (For the Yogacarin,J neither is the [entity] apprehended by another awareness, because this would contradict his own tenets, for it would entail [the following consequence]: If one cognition is the object of another cognition, then this would [describe] the conditions of 'mind alone'; therefore, the apprehender [of the entity] would be totally nonexistent, and that which is not apprehended [by anything] has no claim to existence." But the Yogacarin asserts that "mind alone" is the apprehender of all objects, and that it, and not the objects, is ultimately existent. 101. The Yogacarin wants to establish his doctrine of reflexive awareness in the following way (summarized from MAB, 167-168): "The memory of a given event is simply 'memory of an object' and not 'memory of the experience of an object.' Why is this so? If memory included 'memory of an experience,' then a second 'experiential cognition' .would be required to experience the memory itself, and a third to experience this second 'experiential cognition.' ... This would involve the fallacy of eternal regression. Furthermore, the cognition must experience itself, because otherwise one cognition must experience another, discrete cognition, which would require a third cognition, and so on and on. The same fault would be applicable. (The Prasangika's rejoinder] If this is supposed to be proven from the ultimate point of view, that is, by postulating the presence of intrinsically existent realities referred to as 'cognition,' 'memory,' and 'object,' then we suggest that our opponent consult our previous arguments concerning this issue. If, however, it is to be proven from the perspective of everyday experience, then there is a logical fallacy in such an argument which must be acknowledged. Reflexive awareness is taken as the proof of memory, while at the same time memory is used as the proof of reflexive awareness. The argument is circular and therefore invalid.'' 102. MAB, 169: "In this case, if such a claim can be made on the strength of each and every [entity's] having been established as a real substance, then production from self and from another are [both] untenable, and consequently memory itself is an impossiblity: How could the unsubstantiated [concept of] reflexive awareness be proven by the unsubstantiated [concept oil memory?
l
Notes to Page 166
245
Moreover, if it is [to be proven] on the strength of everyday convention, then from this perspective as well [it must be admitted that] memory as the cause oJ reflexive awareness is an impossibility. Why is this? If in this case reflexive awareness is to be proven by [a syllogism incorporating] 'cognition' [as the major (i.e., unproven) term]-like [the term] 'fire' (in the classic syllogism used to infer the existence of fire from the presence of smoke), and if because oJ the existence [of this cognition], as in [the syllogism involving] smoke and fire, the existence [of reflexive awareness] is to be proven through the medium of a subsequently arising memory, then reflexive awareness is not conclusively proven. In this event, how is it that there can exist a memory 'having reflexive awareness as its cause,' and 'not arising without awareness'? The existence of a 'magic water stone' does not follow from the mere sight of water, and the existence of 'magic fire stone' does not follow from the mere sight of fire. This is so becau~e even without such miraculous gems water can be produced from rain, and fire from friction. In the same way, even without postulating the existence of reflexive awareness, one can account for the arising of memory [as a purely conventional phenomenon]." 103. The argument here is a bit obscure, but the main point is clear enough. With or without the reflexive awareness postulated by the Yogacarin, a memory must always be different from the cognition of the original experience, and the nature of the relationship which obtains between two such distinct events remains to be explained. Cf. MAE, 171: "This argument-namely, 'because it is different'-supersedes all other particularities such as the fact of being included in a single continuum or the fact of being entities [related as] cause and effect. Because the moment of the memory-cognition (smrtiJiiiina) arises subsequent to the [remembered] experience, it is different. Therefore, just like the cognition belonging to another continuum, it cannot be included in a single continuum with the cognition of .the original experience (anubhavaJiiiina), nor can it participate in the state of affairs defined by two entities [related as] cause and effect." 104. The memory of an experience is no different from the actual experience insofar as both are presented in the form of a dichotomy between perceiving subject and perceived object. Cf. MAE, 172: "This is the practice current in the context of everyday experience, and as such it is not to be [rejected through] excessive recourse to analysis (shin tu dpyad par bya ba ni rna yin te), for conventional reality survives through the grace of these fictions." 105. MAE, 172:" 'It is aware of itself': [In this assertion] the self which is being known is the object (karmabhava), the same [self] is the agent (kartr, i.e., the knower), and the activity [of knowing] is also not separated [from this self]. As a consequence, the agent, the object, and the action are identical. The sameness of these [three] is nowhere actually perceived-as though a carpenter, the wood, and the activity of cutting were identical!" . 106. TKP, 302-303: "Because his philosophical view lacks the subtlety assoCl.ated with the wisdom that discriminates [between the nondefinitive] and the highest, definitive meaning [in the scriptures], our opponent the Cittamatrin (Yogacarin) has developed strong attachment to a mere part of the body of [explanation of] the dependent, as though (this part] were the (highest] truth.
L
a
l 246
Notes to Pages 166-/6 7
On account of this, he has thrown out the ambrosia contained in the.jug of [explanation of) the dependent and refilled it with a watery, unsystematic rational analysis. For the sake of his own poorly ordered thinking he has used reason to negate the ordered conditions taken for granted throughout everyday experience-things that can be proven only from the perspective of that experience: expressions like 'remain,' 'go,' 'act'; external form and things produced from externally apprehended [objects]: for example, feeling, and so on. Therefore all that remains for the the Cittamatrin is trouble, and he will never attain to success, that is, to the highest station [of a buddha]. When the external [object] is rejected, it is only reasonable that whatever is related to it, like [the expression] 'go,' and so forth, would also be negated. What he teaches is entirely divorced from the truth of the screen ... . The [Cittamatrin] philosopher erroneously explains nondefinitive meaning as though it were definitive meaning. In so doing he strays from the intention ofthe buddha's teaching and sirltply treads the path of a system constructed out of his own imagination ." (In acco;dance with Tsong kha pa, we should probably read rgud pa in place of the rgyud pa of La Vallee Poussin's Tibetan edition [1907-1912, 174.12].) 107 . Cf. SBS, fol. 28 (p. 396): iiciiryaniigiirjunapiidamiirgad bahirgatiiniim na iiviibhyupiiya!l (five 'sry upiiya/1) I bhr~.tii hi te samvrti-saryamiirgiit (-tattvasaryiit) tadbhramiatai ciisti na mo~asiddhi~ II 108. Cf. ibid.; and BCA, 179: upiiyabhiitam vyavahiirasaryam upeyabhiitam paramiirthasatyam I tayor vibhiigam na paraitiyo vai mithyiivikalpai~ sa kumiirgayiitafl II 109. MAB, 175-178: "The knower of the world, without having learned them from another, taught the two truths-the truth of the screen and the truth of the highest meaning: there is no third truth. The conqueror taught the truth of the screen in the interest of all living creatures, for the benefit of the world, through which these beings would develop faith in the sugata with the object of [finding] joy [in liberation from suffering]. The lion among men designated as a 'screen' teachings concerning the six migrations of the mass of sentient beings: hell creatures, animals, hungry ghosts, demons, men, and gods. Low families and high, wealthy homes and poor, slaves, servants, women, men, and eunuchs: Whatever particularities that are found among living beings, incomparable one, these you have assigned to the world.. And having penetrated, through wisdom, the truth of the screen, the knower of the world taught it to men. Living beings are content to circle in the round of transmigration, where they enter into the eight worldly qualities of gain, loss, fame, obscurity, praise, blame, joy, and misery. Those who gain cling [to their possessions], while those who Jose become angry. The others not discussed here are also similarly understood as infected with one or the other of these eight diseases. Those who declare that this screen Is of the highest meaning must be seen as misguided. They confound happiness with misery and misery with joy, claiming that the non-self has the intrinsic nature of self, and that impermanent things are eternal. Content to live in this way, when they hear what the buddha has spoken, they become afraid, and without understanding anything they reject what they have heard. Once they have rejected the words of the buddha, these living beings go on to experience intolerable suffering in the hell regions. Without any means they search for happiness, but because of their foolishness they endure
I·
Notes to Page 167
247
hundreds of miseries. Whoever comprehends with a clear mind [the truth of the screen] taught for the benefit of the world will pass beyond all desire, like a snake shedding an old skin. 'All things are without intrinsic being, empty, and devoid of any distinguishing characteristic': [This is the truth of) the highest meaning. He who hears this and becomes happy will obtain unsurpassed awakening . . . . Teachings on conventional truth are the means, and so it is written (PSP, 264): 'What hearing and what teaching is there of a Dharma without words? Yet what is without words is taught and heard, through a process of met-· aphorical imputation (samiiropiid). ' " 110. Cf. §3.5.3, "The Prasarigika critique," for the concept of paratantrabhiiva. Tsong kha pa explains what is meant here by "for a specific purpose" (TKP, 308): "First, because it is necessary; second, in order to persuade students of the Miidhyamika to reject philosophical views; and third, as the means of gradually engendering an appreciation of the reality [expressed in the truth of the highest meaning]." 111. MAE, 180: "The screen is to be accepted strictly in dependence on the consensus of others, and not on our own authority. Thus it is accepted only with reference to everyday experience. Consequently, if the refutation [of any element of conventional experience J is accomplished for the benefit of one who [normally] accepts it, then this is indeed a proper refutation-but not [if such a refutation J is attempted for the benefit of anyone else." 112. LA, 50.32: cittadriyavikalpamiitram idamyaduta traidhiitukam I Also cf. DB, 32.9: cittamiitram idam yaduta traidhiitukam I 113. If the Yogacarin intends to use these words in support of his argument, then the Madhyamika offers an extract from the Yogacarin's own scriptural authority in response (DB, 6, 31-32): "The bodhisattva completely comprehends dependent origination according to its form . . . . He realizes that this mass of suffering, this tree of suffering alone is present, devoid of anyone who acts or feels. He realizes that 'the object of action' (karman) is defined through clinging to [the reified concept of) 'agent.' Where no agent exists, there the object of action as well is not apprehended in an ultimate sense. The triple world is mind only. The twelve limbs of existence distinguished and proclaimed by the tathiigata all rest on mind alone." 114. MAE, 184-185: "The expression 'non-Buddhist philosophers' (tirthikas) is used in a generic sense, as it must also include any Buddhists ( dhiirmikas) who postulate a 'person' or the like. In a manner of speaking, these Buddhists are not Buddhists at all, since like the non-Buddhists they have not correctly penetrated the meaning of the teaching [on emptiness]. Therefore this designation applies to all of them." 115. Concerning the definition of "mind alone" provided here cf. LA, 34.23: "The person, the continuum, the psychophysical aggregates, conditions and j atoms, a creator god, the high lord, and the 'agent'-these are [all] simply mind alone" (pudgala~ samtati~ skandh~ pratyayii ar'avas tathii I pradhiinam iiviira~ kartii cittamiitram vikalpyate I/).
116. The argument here is based on a bit of scholastic exegisis. La Vallee Poussin's translation of the first line differs from ours. He has, "De meme que, bien que le mot buddha n'apparaisse pas devant [les mots] tattva, vistara, il y est I
248
Notes to Page 16 7
cependant sous-entendu." In the footnote to this section, he sp._ggests the following interpretation: "Lalitavistara est dit pour Euddhalalitavistata, -Tattvavatiira pour Euddhatattvavatara (??)"(La Vallee Poussin 1907-1911, pt. 2, 242). Tsong kha pa explains the line quite differently (TKP, 314): "Sangs rgyas is explained as 'he whose wisdom concerning reality is rgyas (expansive).' The first word, that is, sangs, is not actually present [in the explanation J, yet the title sangs rgyas is still explained in this way. In an analogous fashion, [when the sutras say 'mind alone' for the full expression] 'mind alone is preeminent in the dichotomy of form and mind,' then the final word, 'preeminent,' is not actually present [in the abbreviated expression]." In deciphering the meaning of this stanza it is helpful to take into account the ancient, explanation of the term buddha supplied by Yasomitra, for this definitio~ pfovides the key to the etymology of the Tibetan translation equivalent sangs rgyas (awakened-expansive). Cf. AK 1.2: "On account of the blossoming of intelligence buddha means 'blossomed' (or 'expansive': vi-buddha), as with a lotus that has blossomed. Or else, on account of the casting off of duality which is the sleep of ignorance, buddha means 'awakened' (pra-buddha), as with a man who has awakened." 11 7. Cf. SES, fol. 24 (p. 393): nipam eva yadi tatra ni#ddham cittamatram idam ity adhigamya (avagamya) I mohakarmajam uviica kim artham cittam atra punar efa mahatma II 118. MAE, 186: ."In the Daiabhumikasiitra (31.30-31) mind is said to have as its causes spiritual ignorance and the prenatal dispo~it!ons (samskaras). Therefore it does not exist through any intrinsic distinguishing char'jlrticular (asadhiirarza) action of the peacock. [Insentient things such as, for exarhple,Jlotuses,. are produced from the common action of all sentient beings. Other [things of both sentient and insentient worlds] are to be understood in this way. . . . Therefore, the entire univei:se is produced from volitional action, but such action is dependent on mind. Only action associated with mind is accumulated [for retribution], and without mind there is no volitional action.
..,
Notes to Page 168
249
Consequently, mind alone is the preeminent cause of the creation of the universe ." The relationship between mind (or 'thought,' citta) and volitional action (ko."rma) described here and in 6.88 should not be thought of as linear or chronological. Mind and action are interdependent, since one does not exist without the other. Of the two, however, mind is primary, because it alone provides the "intent" or "will" (cetanii) which distinguishes the purposive action of living beings from the random movements of insentient things. Cf. MS 17.2-3, where action is defined as either cetanii 'mental' or cetayitvii 'physical' or 'verbal .' The force of such action is said to function as the cause of retribution either in the same or in some future life . 121. Among the various philosophical schools which make up the Prasangika 's opponents, there is a considerable difference of opinion as to the identity of the agent. Some maintain that the only real agent is God , some say that it is a "principle of action," and still others assert that it is "mind." According to the Prasangika, in identifying the agent as "mind alone" (cittamiitram), ·the siitras do not negate the external, objective world, since it was never competing for the title of" agent." Cf. MAB, 192: "If two kings desire power in a single land, and one of the two rivals is expelled, while the other assumes control of the country, still the citizens would not be harmed in any case, because they are inc;!ispensable to both kings. It is the same here, because material form (riipa) is indispensable to both [mind and any other possible agent) . Form remains unscathed [by the debate over the nature of the agent), and therefore one can unqualifiedly maintain that form exists." 122 . "Them" (de dag) refers specifically to form and mind, but it also , according to Candraklrti, includes all the psychophysical aggregates. 123 . Cf. LA, 22: "Just as a physician prescribes medicine for various diseases, so the buddhas taught to sentient beings [the doctrine of] ' mind alone.' " Also ibid . , 33: "Mahamati the great bodhisattva addressed the blessed one in these words: 'In the teachings of the highest scriptures the tathiigatagarbha is described by the blessed one . It was described by you as being naturally brilliant , pure from the start with [all) purities, bearing the thirty-two marks [of a realized buddha], immanent in the bodies of all creatures. It was described as a jewel of immense value wra_pped in soiled cloth: wrapped in the cloth of the psychophysical aggregates, of the elements of sensation ( dhatus), of the sense organs along with their objects (iiyatanas); dominated by clinging, antipathy, and delusion; soiled by the fllth of conceptualization; [but] permanent , firm , and eternal . How is it, blessed one, that this talk of a tathiigatagarbha is not equivalent to the talk of the non-Buddhist philosophers concerning a self (iitman)? Non-Buddhist philosophers as well, blessed one, teach about the self as permanent, as a non-agent, without qualities, all-powerful, and devoid of parts.' The blessed one responded: 'Mahamati, my teachings on the tathiigatagarbha are not at all equivalent to the talk of non-Buddhist philosophers concerning a self. But why is thi~, Mahamati? The fully awakened saints, the tathagatas, teach about the lathagatagarbha as emptiness, as the limit of existence (bhiitak.o.ti), as nirviil)a, as unborn , uncaused, unceasing, and as other such things . Although the supreme lathiigatagarbha is not susceptible to reification (nirvikalpa) and devoid of any irnage (niriibhiisa), [still] they teach about it in this way so as to mitigate the
250
Notes to Pages 168-169
object of terror of those naive people [who are afraid of] selflessness. And yet here there is no clinging to this self, Mahamati, on the part of present or future bodhisattvas. Just as, Mahiimati, a potter fashions a variety of pots from one mound of clay particles through applying a hand, technique, a stick, water, a string, and effort; so, Mahamati, the same selflessness of phenomena which is absolutely free from all conceptualized distinguishing characteristics is taught by the tathagatas by a variety of synonymous words and phrases, either through instruction on the tathtigatagarbha or on selflessness-and as with the potter, through application of diverse forms of wisdom or skillful means. Thus, Mahamati, they teach about the tathtigatagarbha [for the purpose of attracting those who are attached to some reified concept of self]. The most profound knowledge of the scriptures of all the buddhas is characterized by emptiness, by nonproduction, by nonduality, and by the lack of any distinguishing characteristic." 124. MAB, 199: "The blessed buddhas introduce the disciples into the absence of intrinsic being by degrees. Just as giving and the other [perfections] are extolled from the beginning as means toward entering into the dharmatti, because those who have practiced giving and so forth easily enter into the dharmatti, so also refutation of the object of knowledge is a means toward penetration into selflessness. Therefore the blessed one initially taught the refutation of the object of knowledge. Those who comprehend the selflessness of the object of knowledge will easily penetrate to the selflessness of the knower. Among those who comprehend the absence of intrinsic being of the object of knowledge, some will arrive unaided at an understanding of the absence of intrinsic being of the knower, and some will arrive there with a little supplementary instruction. Therefore the buddhas initially taught about negation of the object of knowledge." "Refutation of the object of knowledge" refers to the Madhyamika's rejection of any concept of an intrinsically existent entity, an entity supposed to exist entirely outside the context of its relationship with other entities and with the consciousness through which it is known. Once this refutation is appreciated, one can proceed to examine the relationship between the empty entity and the mind which takes it as an object of knowledge. 125. MAB, 206: "If entities were produced fortuitously, then just as the Panasa tree would not be the cause of its own fruit, so [that fruit] could just as well be produced from the Nimba, the Amra, and so forth, since all of them would be the same insofar as they have the quality of not being a cause. And just as [a fruit] would be produced from the Panasa tree even though [the Panasa tree] would not be the cause [of that fruit], so the same fruit might just as well be produced at any time in the past, present, or future. Fruit produced from the ripening of the Amra, the Lakura, and the rest, which appears at fixed times in dependence on the seasons, would exist perpetually, because it would not be dependent on the seasons. Likewise, because the peacock would not be the cause for its own feathers, such eyes might be found on the raven as well; and the peacock might just as well be born with the feathers of a parrot! In this way all the things of the world would be produced perpetually, or else they would not exist at all. On this account talk of spontaneous (svabhtivena) [production] is unreasonable."
Notes to Pages 169-1 70
251
126. Cf. PSP, 38: (6 . 100ab) grhyeta naiva cajagadyadi hetuiiinyam syadyadvad eva gaganotpalavarrwgandhau I 127 . The argument there is directed against the Carviika or the Lokayata. The discussion about the afterlife (paraloka 'another world') is with reference to transmigration. Candrakirti characterizes the position of these philosophers as follows (MAB, 212) : "[These philosophers] have two positions: (1) the position entailing belief in a form of intrinsic being associated with the material elements (bhiitasvabhiiva) (that the self or mind originates within one or a combination of the material elements); and (2) the position entailing negation of any possibility of an afterlife (a denial of transmigration)." 128. "Object of knowledge" =the material elements. 129. According to Candrakfrti, when one negates the possibility of transmigration and assumes that the present material world is the only reality, he elevates the physical body to the status of an ultimately real entity. If the material elements of the body are intrinsically existent, and consciousness has its origin in these elements, then this is simply another way of positing the existence of a real (transcendental) self. The philosophical view which negates the possibility of an afterlife has, in this case , its foundation in the concept of intrinsic being associated with the material elements. Therefore, in holding such a view one tacitly postulates the existence of a real, intrinsically existent self within the elements of the physical body. Strict materialism (or rationalism) is in this important respect no different from idealism , for both positions are founded on presuppositions of an essence (iitman) supposed to provide everyday experience with meaning and structure, and both have failed to see through the constraints of our natural interpretations and associated observational languages . 130. Cf. SBS, fol. 21 (p. 391 ): bhiitiini tiini na hi santi yathii tathoktam siimiinyatalz svaparato dvayataf ca janma I ahetukam ca khalu yena purii ni#ddham bhiitiiny amuni anuditiini na santi tasmiit II 131. Cf. SBS, fol. 22 (pp . 391-392): bhiivii~ svabhiivarahitii/1 svaparobhayasmiij janmiisti hetum anapelcyya ca naiva yasmiit I mohas tu yena bahulo ghanavrndatulyo lokasya te na (tena) vi1ay~ khalu bhiinti mithyii II 132. MAB, 216: "The clouds of a profound delusion cover over perception of the intrinsic nature of [everyday things like the colors) blue and so forth, preventing naive common people from perceiving this intrinsic nature (emptiness) . In its place they mistakenly cling to an individual essence that appears a reality to them." 133. Cf. SBS, fol. 22 (p. 392): kaicid yathaiva vitatham timiraprabhiiviit keiadvicandraiikhicandrakamalcyikadi I grh'(liiti tadvad abudha~ khalu mohado!iid buddhyii vicitram avagacchati samskrtam hi II 134. TKP, 342: "[The Madhyamika] philosophy makes it clear that volitional action stemming from prenatal dispositions arises from the foundation of delusion or spiritual ignorance, and without delusion that volitional action would not arise. Ordinary people should certainly know this and be governed by it, but when particularly adept people hear that the problem of spiritual ignorance itself [creates] the prenatal dispositions [to volitional action], they not only penetrate the emptiness of the absence of an intrinsic being within prenatal
252
Notes to Page 170
dispositions, but they also clear away and abandon the profound delusion of spiritual ignorance with the sun of their noble minds-the comprehension of dependent origination. They no longer engage in volitional action stemming from prenatal dispositions because they have eliminated such action, and they are thereby released from the cycle of existence." 135. MAB, 218: "For now, this objection should be raised only against those whose eyes are afflicted with ophthalmia: 'Why is it that although you see nonexistent objects lih floating hairs, still [you do not see] the son of a barren woman?' Later on, those whose eye of wisdom is clouded over with the ophthalmia of spiritual ignorance can also be questioned as follows: 'Why is it that although you see the [psychophysical aggregates of] form and so forth, which have an unproduced intrinsic nature, still [you do not see] the son of a barren woman?' We ourselves ought not to be questioned in this way. The yogis have directly perceived entities as [empty], and we~ others who desire to obtain the wisdom of the yogis have our highest aspiration directed toward those words that explain the intrinsic nature of all things. Although we do endeavor to explain the absence of any intrinsic being within entities, still this is done through the medium of philosophical treatises like this one, which are infused with the wisdom of the yogis. [These words] do not represent my own personal opinion, for in fact my eyes are still clouded by the ophthalmia of spiritual ignorance . . . . Nor are the yogis to be questioned about these things, for they do not perceive any intrinsic being within things either from the perspective of the screen, or from the perspective of the highest meaning." 136. The following objection has been raised: If material forms, including all their attributes such as color and shape, are not actually produced, then why should they still be perceived, while such other unproduced things as "the son of a barren woman" are not? That is, why should some nonexistent things be perceived, while other equally nonexistent things are not? The Madhyamika's response is that such a problem cannot in fact be solved, but can only be disposed of by moving beyond the presuppositions responsible for it. This is accomplished by acquiring facility in using the contrasting set of presuppositions embodied in the soteriological truth of the highest meaning. In making the transition to an incommensurable, alternative set of presuppositions, one gradually comes to appreciate the depth of the conditioning that gives meaning and structure to our normal, everyday experience, and at the same time the built-in limitations of this conditioning also become more and more apparent. As Rorty and others have pointed out, questions of conventional reality have never been adjudicated through reference to philosophical concepts of production and nonproduction, but rather through recourse to the consensus of everyday, pragmatic experience. Chairs and tables are "objectively real" simply because most people perceive them and make use of them, while other objects that appear in dreams, mirages, and magic are only "subjectively real." They are perceived, but only under extraordinary conditions, such that they are generally considered to be deceptive and of little or no use to the community at large. The son of a barren woman, however, is completely unreal, because he is unproduced and inefficacious both in terms of the higher, soteriological truth and within the context defined by everyday concerns.
Notes to Page I 70
253
137. MAB, 202-221: "As the blessed one said (cited from an unidentified siitra): 'The things of the world are like a dream , for in the reality [expressed in the truth of the highest meaning] they are not grounded . And yet the deluded mind becomes attached even to a dream where nothing exists. Although fairy cities may appear, they do not exist in any of the ten directions or anywhere else . A fairy city is established in name only, and the sugata perceives the entire world in just this way. There is no water in a mirage, even though it is seen there by someone who has the perception (samjnii) of water. In the same manner, one who is misled by his imagination conceives of the disagreeable as agreeable. Just as in a highly polished mirror a reflection appears without any intrinsic being, so one must understand all other things as well. Even paradise itself[is not grounded in any intrinsic reality].' " 138. La Vallee Poussin's translation differs substantially from the one adopted here. He has: "De meme toutes chases ne naissent pas en substance au point de vue de ce meme monde [ou: de Ia realite du monde] ." Candraklrti offers no clue in his autocommentary, but Tsong kha pa interprets the stanza as it appears in our translation (TKP, 342): gzugs sogs kyi dngos po 'di kun 'jig rten gyi tha snyad dang I de kho na nyid gnyis kar rang gi ngo bo nyid kyis ma skyes so II 139. Tib. rang gyis yongs su nrya ngan las 'das pa; Skt. svabhiivena parinirvrtta. In their innermost nature, all things [already] participate in complete nirviiJ;Ia. 140. MAB, 223 : "The word ii.di (from the beginning) indicates that [things] are unproduced not only as they occur in the [nondualistic] knowledge of the yogi (yogijnii.niivasthiiyiim), but even before this. Things are not produced by virtue of any quality of individuality even as they occur in the context of everyday convention ( lokavyavahii.riivasthiiyiim). 141. MAB, 224-225: " Objection: If the foundation of a designation (prajnaptyii.iraya) exists, as must be the case with for example, earth , water, fire and wind, form, odor, flavor, and tangible [objects], then it is reasonable to say that the designation has a cause . But in the event that things are mere designations (prajnaptimii.tra), and there is no real substance serving as the foundation for the designation, then the conclusion that they are like the son of a barren woman is incontrovertible. Response: This also is unreasonable, because it is impossible to establish any real substance as the foundation for the designation . ... As it has been said : 'Earth, water, fire, and wind do not exist as separate essences. Any one is nonexistent without the other three, and without that one the other three also do not exist. And when each of them does not itself exist, how is the composite produced?' Just as one does not assert that the impermanent is produced from the permanent, so an unreal substance is not produced from a real substance . As it has been sa·id, once again: 'How is the impermanent produced from the permanent? One never perceives any disparity between the distinguishing characteristics of a cause and [its] effect.' Therefore, in a similar manner, a reflection, for example, that is a mere designation is nevertheless apprehended in a mirror, being founded on a collocation [of causes and conditions] including a face and other things which themselves exist as mere designations. A house is designated as dependent on its beams and other structural components which are also mere designations. And a forest is similarly designated as dependent on trees . Just as in a dream one apprehends a sprout that is unpro-
254
Notes to Pages I 71-1 72
duced through any intrinsic being, so it is equally reasonable that no entity exists apart from its own designation. This designation is founded on [a collocation of) other entities which are themselves mere designations." 142. According to the Priisailgika, all the erroneous hypotheses developed to account for production of entities stem from the fundamental ontological confusion involved in the notion that such entities actually exist in some a priori, atemporal manner, subject neither to perception nor to conceptualization. When, under the force of deconstructive analysis and meditative insight, entities are recognized as entirely contingent on a complex web of interrelationships involving both "psychological," sociological, and ontological factors, then theoretical accounts of production that go beyond what is given in everyday experience become superfluous. 143 . Cf. SBS. fol. 26 (p. 394): yii kalpaniiniim vinivrttir etat phalam viciirasya buddhii vado.nti I p.rthagjanii~ lcalpanayaiva buddhii alcalpayan muktim upaitiyogi II 144. "Analysis" (Tib. mam dpyod; Skt. viciira) here refers specifically to the deconstructive, reductio ad absw;dum analysis epitomized in the catu~ko.ti. 145. Cf. PSP, 340: satkiiyadn.tiprabha[v]iin aJe~iin klesiims ca do~iims ca dhiyii vipaiyan I iitmiinam asya vi~ayam ca buddhviiyogi lcaroty iitmanzjedham eva II 146. See stage 4, n. 3. 14 7. Cf. PSP, 344: iitmii tirthyai~ lcalpyate nityariipo 'kartii bhoktii nirgu11o ni~knyaJ ca I lcamcit lcamcid bhedam iiSritya tasya bhedam yiitii prakriyii tirthikiiniim II 148. According to the Priisangika-miidhyamika, the cognitive basis for this deluded clinging to an "I" is the conventional, dependently originated "I." 149. Cf. MA 6.14-21, concerning "production from another." 150. MAB, 243: "Those sentient beings who even now, after the passing of numerous eons, have not escaped from the condition of birth as an animal, they· also do not apprehend this kind of [eternal] self. The word also indicates those born in hell and so on." 151. Cf. PSP, 342: skandhii iitmii ced atas tad bahutviid iitmiinaft .ryus te 'pi bhiiyiim sa eva I dravyam ciitmii priipnuyiit tiidrsaJ ca dravye vrttau vaiparityam ca na .ryiit II 152. This objection holds even if the self is considered to be simply mind. MAB, 246, says, "If according to [another] view the self is mind [alone], then in this case as well cognition is divided into visual and so forth ; and because cognition is multiple and produced and terminated from one moment to the next, so the self also (would be subject to these qualifications]." The Pudgalaviidin identifies the self with all five of the aggregates, and the Yogiiciirin identifies it with mind alone. 153. MAB, 245-246: "The self would become a [conventionally] real substance ( dravyam ciitmii priipnuyiit): Because the psychophysical aggregates are referred to as [conventionally] real substances-being differentiated through the divisions of past, (present, future], and so on; and because the self would be designated as just those [aggregates]: so the self would exist as a [conventionally J real substance. But [other Buddhists] would not want to admit this, on account of [contradictory testimony from the sutras]: 'Monks, there are five things that are nothing but names, mere conventionalities, simple designations . Which five? Time past, time future, space, nirviiJ.la, and the person.' And likewise: 'Just as one refers to a carriage as being founded on its composite parts, so one acknowledges the sentient beings of the screen (the conventional existence
Notes to Pages I 72- I 73
255
ofliving beings) as founded (not equivalent to) the psychophysical aggregates.' ... Furthermore, because the philosophical view of a real, substantial self would have as its object a [conventionally) real substance, it would not be erroneous [in the context of everyday experience)."-, 154. CF. PSP,· 342: iitmocchedo nirvrtau syiid avafyam I niiSotpiidau nirv.rte!z priik /qarLe~u I kartur niiSiit tatphaliibhiiva eva bhuiijltiinyeniirjitam karma ciinya!z II 155. Because the five psychophysical aggregates no longer exist from the moment when nirviii_la is realized, as a consequence of this thesis the self also would be destroyed at that time. Candrakirti condemns this as nihilism-one of the extreme views (antagriihadr~.tis) proscribed by the buddha (MAB, 247-248), yet it would seem that the same condemnation would apply to the idea that the aggregates themselves cease to exist. 156. MAB, 248: "[If ·the self is the aggregates, then)like these aggregates which are produced and terminated from one moment to the next, the self would be produced and terminated from moment to moment prior to realization ofnirviiQ.a, because it would have the intrinsic nature of these aggregates." If this were so, the self, like the physical body, would not continue from one lifetime to the next. Also, the self of one moment would endure the consequences of action performed by a different self, the self of a previous moment, and would escape the consequences of its own action. 15 7. The reference here is to the "inexpressibles" ( avyiik.rtavastus), fourteen points which, according to traditional accounts, were neither to be accepted nor denied. One should not consider the world eternal or not eternal, or both, or neither; nor understand it as subject to termination, or not subject to termination, or both, or neither (cf. PSP, 446; see SN 4, 475ff., for the classical source of this doctrine). In this passage it seems that Candrakirti has used the expression "everyday experience" (loka 'universe,' 'world') with reference to all that goes to make up the objective and subjective constituents of conventional reality -that is, as a synonym for the five psychophysical aggregates. Cf. MAB, 251252: "Therefore, if the expression 'everyday experience' implie~ the psychophysical aggregates, then because the aggregates are not eternal [being subject to production and destruction,) this is tantamount to saying that the world is not eternal. The same conclusion follows from the fact that there are no psychophysical aggregates in nirviii_la. However, speculation to the effect that the world is subject to termination is expressly forbidden [as soteriologically useless], and consequently it is inappropriate to claim that the self is simply the aggregates." The syllogism constructed here is: (1) the world is the aggregates; (2) the aggregates are not eternal; therefore (3) the world is not eternal. Such a conclusion is in direct conflict with a doctrine accepted by all Buddhists and is for this reason unacceptable. On the other hand, it is not at all clear just what this has to do with the self, and no adequate explanation is to be found either in MAB or in TKP. The entire stanza is problematic. 158. MAB, 252-253: "If the self is either the aggregates or mind, then when the meditator realizes the [four noble] truths and the truth of suffering as represented in selflessness-that is, 'all things are without any self,' at that moment, in realizing selflessness, he would realize the nonexistence of the aggregates. This also is not admitted (by our opponents), and therefore the self is not the aggregates. But it may be suggested that the term self is employed when dealing
256
Notes to Page
17~
with the connection between action and its effect, because at that time no other self is possible, and [in this particular case self) implies 'aggregates.' But when i is a matter of the realization of selflessness, then it implies the real, internai agent imagined by others (i.e., non-Buddhists). Therefore when he realize~ selflessness [the meditator] realizes that there are only prenatal disposition: devoid of any real, internal agent, and he does not consequently realize tht nonexistence of [all] entities . ... If (our opponent] fears the consequence tha· there would be realization of the nonexistence of [all] entities, and so takes tht term self to mean 'eternal self,' then he does not consider the self to be either mind or the aggregates, and he has in this case strayed from [his own original: proposition ." 159. If selflessness is understood as " the absence of an eternal self," ther realization of selflessness affords no necessity for abandoning clinging and tht other affiictions which take material form (riipa 'the body') as their object According to the Priisangika, however, the meditator actually perceives selfless· ness as the absence of intrinsic being(= dependent origination, and emptiness) . 160. Cf. SN22, 85.30; and MV 1, 6.38. 161. MAR, 255-256: "This siitra holds that the correct view is expressed in the thought of the self as [dependent] on the five aggregates, and it certainly i~ intended as a rejection of any 'self [supposed to be] different from the aggre· gates . (Cf. MA 6.135.) One needs to appreciate how it rejects the [supposition that] form and the other aggregates are themselves the self, and from this, thai the dependently designated self-the (actual] object of the philosophical view ot a real, substantial self-does not take the aggregates as its appropriated substra· turn . This is meant to be conducive to awareness of reality [as expressed in tht truth of the highest meaning]. If no subject (upadatr 'appropriator') is appre· hended , then its object (upiidiina 'the appropriated substratum') is also nonexist· ent, and so there is no clinging to form and the other [aggregates]." 162. MAB, 256: "Just as when one says, for example, 'The forest is the trees,' [this implies that] the forest is the composite of trees, and not that it is the nature of (each individual] tree, since this would entail the consequence that every tree is a forest." 163 . "The protector," "the one to be subdued," and "the witness" are three expressions traditionally used to characterize the strictly conventional self. Cf., e.g., DP, 157, 159-160. 164. CF. MAB, 258-259: "[The self) is not the mere composite of parts that are the appropriated substratum of the designation ['self], that on which the designation is founded, precisely because it is designated in dependence on them, like something fashioned from the material elements. Even though a color like blue and the visual organ of the eye [associated with color perception] are "caused" by the material elements , still neither is simply the composite of these elements. Likewise, even though the self is a designation taking the psychophysical aggregates as its cause, still it would be unreasonable to maintain that it is simply the composite of these aggregates." In the example of the carriage , we can define the Miidhyamika's terms in this way : (I) "Carriage" is the name , or designation (prajiiapti), which is also referred to as the " appropriator" (upiidiitr); (2) the composite parts (axles , wheels, etc.) are that which . is designated, or "appropriated," hence the term "approptiated substratum" (upa-
Notes to Page I 74
257
diina). A sort of reciprocity obtains, then, between the appropriator and the appropriated substratum . In the context defined by such a relationship, we must further acknowledge the formal existence of at least two distinct but mutually dependent participants. 165. Karma is both '(volitional) action' and 'the object of action.' 166. MAB, 259-260: "Here 'the appropriator' is that which performs the function of appropriating, hence 'the agent'; and 'the appropriating substratum' is that which is taken up, hence 'the object of action.' The appropriator is the self, and the appropriated substratum is any of the five aggregates. In this case, if the composite of form and so on were equivalent to the self, then the agent and the object of action would be identical. This also is undesirable, because it would entail the consequence that the material elements and the forms which take [these elements] as their cause, for example, potter's clay and ajug, would be identical. As it has been said (MS 10.1): 'If the fire is the fuel, then the agent and the action are identical.' And further (ibid., 10.15): 'The whole relationship between the self and the appropriated substratum is completely explained through [the analogy of] fire and fuel, as well as [all other relationships like those between] fabric [and its thread], or the jug [and its clay].' " 167. MAE, 260-261: "This could not be the case. If one does not assert an agent, then without its cause one also cannot assert an action . . .. Therefore, just as one designates action in dependence on an agent, and the agent in dependence on action, likewise one designates the appropriator in dependence on the appropriated substratum, and the appropriated substratum in dependence on the appropriator. Also (MS 27 .8): 'The self is not different from the appropriated substratum, nor is it just that same appropriated substratum; it is not [present in] the absence of the appropriated substratum, and it is certainly not the case that it does not exist.' Consequently, it must be understood that in the absence of the agent, action also does not exist. Moreover, those scriptures that teach that although the agent is not apprhended, still the action and the ripening [of that action] does exist, must be understood as [intended to] refute the existence of the agent through any intrinsic being. One must not understand this as a refutation [of the self], which does exist as a conventional part desig· nated in dependence [on other such parts)." 168. That is, because none of these things is actually the self, the concept of an "I" which becomes the object of clinging cannot be based on the aggregates themselves. Cf. MAB, 263: "The aggregates are not the 'I' which is the object of [this clinging], nor does this 'I' exist apart from the aggregates. Therefore, because no such 'I' exists to serve as the object , the meditator realizes that the self is unapprehended, and from there [he goes on to realize that] 'mine-ness' also is devoid of substance . Once he has so exposed all composite things as devoid of any appropriated substratum, he attains nirval)a. Therefore this analysis is extremely beneficial." ("Mine-ness" refers to all objects of clinging external to the "I.") 169. Cf. SBS, fol. 26 (p. 394): pai_}\ 11111 ahitn chidragatam svagehe gajo 'tra 11iistiti nirastaiamka!z l.fahiiti sarpiid api nama bhilim aho hi niimarjat•atii parasya II 170. Cf. PSP, 434: skandht!IJ iitmii t•irlyate naiva tami santi ,·kandhii niitmanitiha yas· mat I sary anyat/Je syiid ryam kalpanii t•ai lac ciinyalt•am niis~y atah kalpanaisii II
171. MAR, 265: "When there is a dillerencc (bctwl'en the two], then it is rea-
r I
258
Notes to Pages I 74- I 76 '}
sonable that there be a container and a contained entity. For example, one can say, 'There is yogurt in the bowl,' The bowl and the yogurt are distinct in the context of everyday experience, ~d are perceived as container and contained entity. However, the psychophysical aggregates are not different from the self, nor is the self different from them, so there is in this case no [relationship analogous to that which obtains between] 'container' and 'contained entity.' " 172. Cf. PSP, 434-435: if.to niitmii riipaviin niisti yasmiid iitmii mattviirthopayogo hi niitaft I bhede gomiin riipaviin apy abhede tattviinyatve riipato niitmana~ sta~ II 173. Cf. MAB, 266: "Any identity or difference between the self and the aggregates has already been refuted. The suffix which marks the genitive (mator vat-pratyaya) is applied in the case of 'identity,' for example, 'Devadatta possesses form' (riipaviin devadat~); or in the case of 'difference,' for example, '(Devadatta] possesses a cow' (gomiin devadatt~). But there is neither identity nor difference between form and the self, and therefore it is not possible to assert reasonably that the self is in possession ofform." 174. Cf. SBS, fol. 26 (pp. 394-395): riipam niitmii riipaviin naiva ciitmii riipe niitmii riipam iitmany asac ca I skandhiin evam viddhi sarviims caturdhii vimiatyamsii eta i~.tii~ svadr~.te~ II 175. See stage 4, n. 3. 176. Cf. SBS, fols. 26-27 (p. 395): etiini tiini iikhariirzi samudgatiini satkiiyadntivipuliicalasamsthitiini I nairiitmyabodhakuliiena vidiiritiitmii bhedam prayiiti sahasaiva tu (saha yair. - J dr~.tiiaila~ II 177. The argument here is directed against the Sammitlyas, or Pudgalavadins, an early Buddhist sect which, according to Candrakirti, claimed as one of their essential doctrines the view that the self is a "transcendental substance" not susceptible to expression in language or conceptual thought. The same argument could be used against the absolutist interpretation discussed in the first part of §3. For a more sympathetic presentation of this doctrine, see Conze 1962, 122-134. 178. La Vallee Poussin seems to have had some trouble with this stanza. He translated this pada as "il soutiennent qu'il est la connaissance des six vijitiinas (?)(sic.)." He could apparendy make no sense of his interpretation. 179. This and the following three stanzas are crucial to the Prasangika's concept of emptiness. According to the Prasangika, it makes no sense to speak of a "real entity" that does not exist in a context defined by its identity with its characteristic qualities and its difference from other similarly real entities. This means that all entities are real only insofar as they participate in the relationships that make up everyday experience (the truth of the scr.:en: samv.rtisatya). From the perspective of the truth of the highest meaning there is only the emptiness of this maze of interpenetrating reflections, and so it must be stressed that the concept of emptiness has not4ing to do with an epistemological or ontological monism. 180. MAB, 269: "Like the jug, one must also think of the self as existing [merely) as a designation." 181. MAB, 271: "In order to clarify both positions, that is, that [the self] as both container (iidhiira) and contained (iidheya), the compound skandhiidhiira subsumes the two (meani11gs) .•.. Therefore, when one properly considers the
r I
Notes to Page I 76
I
I,
259
self a [mere] designation, unapprehended, then one should not accept the self by means of any of the alternatives which have been discussed." 182. MAB, 271: "There is no production without a cause, [nor is there spontaneous production, nor is there production from another, nor from both 'self and 'other,') yet we accept the statement 'this originates in dependence on that' so as not to fall into conflict with what is given in the context defined by the truth of the screen. Similarly, in this case as well (the sel~ is entirely dependent on [another such] dependently designated entity. (All other alternatives for explaining the relationship between the self and the aggregates] must be relinquished, because they are marked by the fallacies that have been described in the preceding stanzas. One must accept the conclusion that the self is simply designated in dependence on the psychophysical aggregates. By doing this, one conforms to convention, for the self is designated as a matter of conventional practice." 183 . Candrakirti has already discussed the first five alternatives listed here, so that only the theses concerning the composite and the shape remain to be dealt with . 184. The carriage cannot be the composite of its parts or the shape divorced from its parts, for if we cease to postulate the existence of the carriage (the possessor of the parts, or the possessor of the shape of the assembled parts), then the "parts" are parts of what? Just as there is no carriage without carriage parts, so there are no carriage parts without a carriage. (For another argument dealing with shape, cf. 6.136 .) 185. MAB, 273: "If within the carriage the particular shape of the wheel and so on is exactly the same as it was before [assembly o~ the carriage, then it is certain that, as it was nonexistent in the midst of the disassembled parts, so the carriage does not exist even when it [is assembled), because the shape of the [individual] parts is no different (from what it was before assembly] ." 186. MAB, 274: "If within the carriage any difference at all has been produced in the shape of the (parts] as compared with the previous width, length, circularity, and so forth of such things as the wheels, axles, and bolts, then it should be apprehended-but no difference is apprehended. The [individual] wheel possesses a particular shape composed of its spokes, rim, hub, [and the other parts], and when the carriage is [assembled), no difference at all can be perceived. Likewise the width and so on of the axle and [other parts) does not change, and therefore it is unreasonable to say that the carriage is [merely) the shape of its parts." 187 . MAB, 275 : "If any entity whatsoever called 'the composite' did in fact exist, then one might legitimately designate a shape as dependent on it. The socalled composite , however, does not exist in any sense, and how could [the carriage] be designated as a shape dependent on that which does not even exist? According to [our opponent), a designation can be founded only on a real substance ." For both the Prasangika and his opponent, the composite is not real because it is only a composite-an assemblage of real parts. The shape of this "composite" is like "the scent of a flower growing in midair." 188. Th'lt is, just as your reasoning leads inevitably to the conclusion that the shape is merely a conventional designation dependent on another designation (the composite) dependent on yet another designation . .
260
Notes to Pages I 76-1 77
189. MAB, 275: "Composite things which possess a deceptive intrinsic nature are produced in dependence on falsehood [generated out] of spiritual ignorance. For example, the sprout that possesses a deceptive intrinsic nature is produced in dependence on a seed that itself possesses a deceptive intrinsic nature. One must recognize the nature of all causes and effects without remainder as possessing a deceptive intrinsic nature. What good is this nonsensical clinging to an entity which is like the shadow of a deer, when one is incapable of eating [real] meat even after a hundred thousand attempts?" If one cannot eat real meat (cannot find a real person), then why try to obtain meat from an illusory deer (why try to construct a real person out of illusory "composites")? 190. MAB, 276: "It has already been explained how form and so forth are not produced. Therefore, since they are not produced, they do not exist. How is it reasonable that [things] that do not exist should be characterized as the cause of designations like 'jug' and so forth? Consequently, the jug and so on are not in possession of a quality of self characterized by the shape of thei; form (and their other characteristic qualities]. It is unreasonable that such things as jugs should be considered to have a real substance for an appropriated substratum." · 191. MAB, 276-277: "Objection: If indeed, when searched for according to the seven alternatives in the system just described, the carriage did not exist, then because it did not exist in the world the conventional reality designated "carriage" would be totally destroyed, and one would not encounter such expressions as 'Bring the carriage!' 'Buy a carriage! ' and 'Prepare the carriage!' Therefore, because they are taken for granted in the context of everyday experience, carriages and [other such thin.;s] do exist. Response: This problem is yours alone. The carriage is not discovered when searched for according to the seven alternatives previously discussed, and still you devise methods to establish it through rational analysis as an [objectively real] entity, without accepting any alternative means of proof. Consequently, just how will you establish the everyday, conventional realities represented in expressions like 'Bring the carriage!' and so forth? ... Although the carriage will not be established through any of the seven alternatives (discussed] in rhe system above, whether from the perspective of the highest meaning or from that of the screen, still the world abandons rational analysis and designates the carriage in dependence on its parts, the wheel and so on . In the same way (the colors] blue and the like, and (the psychophysical aggregates] feeling and so on (are designated in dependence on their parts]. We, however, accept 'designation in dependence' as the sole condition of origination in dependence, and therefore our position does not lead to the consequence of destroying everyday convention . It would behoove our opponent as well to accept this [concept]." 192. MAB, 278: "With reference to its appropriation of the substratum [composed of] wheels and so on, it is an 'agent'; and with reference to its own appropriated substratum it is an 'appropriator.' " 193. MAB, 279: "[Everyday experience] must be completely turned around . The everyday experience of the screen does not exist when subjected to analysis, but it does exist when it is unexamined and taken for granted. For just this reason, when the meditator systematically analyzes it in this way he quickly
Notes to Page I 77
261
plumbs the depths of the reality [expressed in the truth of the highest meaning]." 194. MAB, 280: "Although one who conceptualizes does indeed conceive of the wheel and so forth as a carriage simply through knowing them in conjunction with each other, another person [who is not entirely dependent on conceptualization] does not do this. The [first person] conceives of a 'possessor' of parts like the wheel, which is dependent on it own parts. But if the wheel and the other parts are completely disassembled and scattered about, then they will not be thought of as parts of a carriage." 195. MAB, 281: "For example, when a carriage-the possessor of parts-is burned, its parts as well will certainly be burned. Similarly, when the fire of discrimination springs from the friction caused by rubbing together the wood of analysis, and the carriage is completely burned by this fire, which has nonapprehension as its flame, then the parts also become fuel for wisdom, and they inflict no harm (through being conceptualized as possessing some] quality of self, because they too are incinerated." 196. MAB, 281-282: "Just as the carriage is designated in dependence on the wheels and so forth-the wheels and other parts serving as the appropriated substratum (upiidiina) and the carriage as the appropriator (upadiitr), likewise, in accord with the truth of the screen, so as not to destroy everyday convention completely, the self is considered an appropriator. The five psychophysical aggregates, the six elements, and the six sense organs with their particular objective referents constitute the appropriated substratum of the self, and the self is conceptualized in dependence on these aggregates, and so on. As the wheels and other parts make up the appropriated substratum of the carriage, so the psychophysical aggregates make up the appropriated substratum of the self." 197. Upiidiina 'appropriation'= 'the appropriated substratum,' just as karma 'action' = 'the object of the action.' 198. MAB, 282: "In the same way that this relationship between 'appropriated substratum' and 'appropriator' is ordered according to convention, [in the case of the self] the relationship-between 'object of the action' and 'agent' is to be accepted as, for example, with the carriage . . . . The so-called appropriated substratum of the psychophysical aggregates is the object of the action, while the self is the agent. This is the [conventional] relationship. The self, which is entirely dependent on [other] dependent designations (upiidiiyaprajii.aptisamiifrita), provides no basis for concepts of absolutism or nihilism, or any other (such extreme views]. Consequently, concepts like permanence and impermanence are easily refuted." 199. MAB, 285-286: "ObJection: But why is it that concepts like impermanence and so on do not properly apply to the self? Response: Because [in terms of the truth of the highest meaning] there is no such entity. If there were any self whatsoever with the intrinsic nature of an entity, then concepts of impermanence would be applicable, but no such self exists, and because it does not exist (these concepts and any others do not apply to it] . . . . When searched for through the seven alternatives, a permanent or impermanent ['I'] is impossi. ble. He who does not perceive [its] unreality, who is attached to [its] existence
I
~
T
262
Notes to Pages 177-178
through the force of spiritual ignorance and clings to the notion 'This is the self because of his philosophical view of a real, substantial '1'-he transmigrates from one life to the next." 200. MAE, 286-287: "One should know the 'self as that with reference to which the idea of an 'I' becomes manifest to numberless creatures wrapped in spiritual ignorance and dwelling in various migrations: humans, hungry ghosts, animals, [gods, demons, and those tormented in the hell regions]. The cognition of 'mine' appears with reference to the internal [things J sharing in the quality of self, like the eye and so forth, which are the foundation of the designation [of a self], as well as the external [possessions of the self]. That is, anything there may be with reference to which [the self] becomes a 'possessor.' This self is established through spiritual ignorance, and not through any intrinsic essence. Although it does not exist, it is conventionally so designated through spiritual ignorance. The meditators, however, do not apprehend it in any way; and when it is not apprehended, the eye and so forth which constitute its appropriated substratum also do not appear. The meditator apprehends no essence in any entity, and he is liberated from the round oftransmigration." 201. MAE, 287-288: "Just as a jug is impossible without potter's clay, so in the absence of the self there is also nothing to be called 'mine.' Consequently the meditator apprehends neither 'I' nor 'mine.' He perceives no round of transmigration and is liberated. When form and the [psychophysical aggregates] are not apprehended, then [affiictions]like clinging and the rest which depend on them also do not arise. [Having perceived] no appropriated substratum, the pratyekabuddhas and sriivakas abide in nirviiQa. But the bodhisattvas are dominated by compassion, and even though they have already perceived selflessness they remain in the current of existence until [all beings have attained] awakening. On this account, those who are skillful should strive toward [perception of] selflessness as it has been explained here." La Vallee Poussin's sred pa'i (1907-1912, 288.7) iserroneous, as he surmises. Cf. TKP, 406.13, for srid pa'i 'current of existence' on which we have based our translation. 202. TKP, 408: "Not only are parts and so forth interdependently established, but cause and effect as well are interdependent. ... Accordingly, in the event that they are established through an intrinsic being, then: (1) It would be unreasonable [to suppose that] the cause is primary, since when the cause exists the effect is established in dependence on it; and (2) it would be unreasonable to suppose that the effect is primary, since it would [in that case] emerge without any cause. Therefore, it must be understood that, like the carriage, cause and effect are designations dependent on each other, and not intrinsically existing." 203. MAE, 291: "In this case, if the cause produces the effect through connection with it, then as there is no difference between a river and the water of the ocean with which it merges, the merged [cause and effect] would be identical. Consequently there would be no difference between saying 'This is the cause' and 'This is the effect.' ... If there is production without connection, then just as something else which is not the effect does not connect [with the cause, the effect would not connect with it cause] and would not be produced.
J
T
Notes to Page I 78
. '
l
263
Or else, if there is production without connection, then everything might as well be produced [from a single, identical cause]. For one who advocates a cause and effect ~ith intrinsic being, no third concept [of the causal relation· ship] is possible aside from [the two alternatives of] connection or nonconnec· tion, so an effect is.not produced from a cause with intrinsic being." 204. MAB, 291-292: "A cause that has the quality of being a cause (hetutva) is a cause from which an effect follows. If, even in the absence of any effect, a cause could have the quality of being a cause, then the 'quality of being a cause' possessed by this cause would be characterized by the nonexistence of any cause; this is unacceptable." 205. MAB, 292: "We have conducted [the preceding] analysis of the intrinsic distinguishing characteristics of the produced and the producer, [demonstrating that] production depends on erroneous conceptualization. Entities are like magical apparitions, for their intrinsic nature is unproduced . Nevertheless, like the hair and other things apprehended by someone afflicted with ophthalmia, even without any intrinsic being [these entities] are taken as the objects of reified concepts, without [further] reflection. [Given this understanding,] the previously discussed fallacies do not apply to us. Also, insofar as the things of everyday experience are established without analysis, .they are established." 206. MAB, 293-294: "Here is why we say that you negate all things without any reason. Indeed, what is reasonable about [your claim] that a cause unconnected with its effect does not produce [that effect)? Without connection a magnet attracts the iron which is its proper object, whiie it does not attract everything. Similarly, without connection the eye perceives form, which is its proper object, while it does not [perceive] anything (i.e., it does not perceive sounds or other nonmaterial things). In this same way, (1) a cause lacks any connection [with the effect] it produces; but (2) a cause does not produce just anything that is not connected [with it]-it produces only its proper effect. Therefore noble men would never agree with you, because you unreasonably negate all things. Moreovet·, in arguing you resort to any refutation at all. Without any cogent position of your own, you argue just to destroy your opponent's position ." 207. TKP, 412 (cf. MAB, 294-295): "The opponent's thesis presupposes 'existence'; that is, it presupposes the assertion of an ultimate meaning established through reference to [a concept of] intrinsic being. But we hold no such thesis, and therefore the fallacy implicit in both 'connection' and 'nonconnection,' and the consequences thereof, do not apply to us . . . . As it has been said (PV, 260-261): ' "Subhiiti, does something (dhamw.) unproduced attain an unproduced goal?" Subhiiti responds: "Honorable Siiriputra, I would not consider an unproduced attainment to be attained by somethin~ produced , nor would I consider it to be attained by something unproduced." Siiriputra continues: "Honorable Subhiiti, is there no goal and no full realization (abhisamaya) (of that goal]?" Subhiiti responds : "Honorable Sariputra, the goal and full realization [of that goal) certainly do exist, but not in the form of both [soteriological and conventional truths] . Sariputra, both the goal and full realization are simply everyday realities. [All of the various levels of spiritual attainment including] the bodhisattva are mere conventional realities. From the perspec-
Notes to Pages I 79-183
264
tive of the highest meaning, however, there is no goal and no full realization.",,,
208. "Objective fact" (Tib. dngos grub) is an atemporal, noncontextualized truth, as opposed to a statement designed to suit the needs of a particular time and place. 209. See the discussion ofthese stanzas in §3.4.2, "Dependent designation," and at the close of"The perfection of wisdom," in §4.6.3. 210. The same list of sixteen examples is given in MVP §933-957, 211. "Being" (bhiiva) is the object of reified concepts of intrinsic existence. Cf. MS 22 .11 : translated and discussed in § 3, n. 69. 212. MAB, 313: " 'Extreme' refers to the extremes of absolutism and nihilism ." 213. The eighteen elements are the six senses, with their respective objects and the cognitions associated with them. 214. The various types of meditation are discussed in the context of the relevant classical sources in Dayal 1932, 229fT; see also Lamotte 1944-1980 for extended discussion of the dhyiinas and other special powers referred to in these closing stanzas of stage 6. 215. The "gateways to deliverance" (vimok$amiikhas}are a series of meditations on three aspects of emptiness. They lead to the recognition that everyday experience (samsara) is the freedom of nirv~a. The first of these, "deliverance through emptiness" (iiinyatiiuimok$a), is associated with composite things and their absence of a self (aruitman). The second, "deliverance through signlessness" (animittavimok$a), relates to the absence in conventional things of any "sign" or logical mark which could be seized upon and held by the mind . This is the recognition of any discrete thing's inability to provide lasting satisfaction to the craving that comes from ignorance of their deeper nature. The third, "deliverance through wishlessness" (aprarzihitavimok$a), is the cessation of all hope and fear previously connected with the idea that enduring security could be found in any composite thing. This is the renunciation of desire for nirv~a, because the possibility of nirv~a is seen to be present not in some form of security that can be desired, but here and now in the world as it is. For a more detailed discussion of these three, see Conze 1962, 59-64. 216. La Vallee Poussin 1907-1912 numbers 6.209 as 6.210. 217 . La Vallee Poussin 1907-1912 numbers both this stanza and the next 6.211. 218 . These four types are: (1) knowledge of the teachings arrived at through analysis and logic; {2) knowledge of their meaning; (3) knowledge of the etymology of the words used in the texts; and (4) confidence in one's grasp of the first three types. See Dayal 1932, 259fT., for a brief discussion of the pratisamvids with references to classical sources. 219. Or "the emptiness ofnonbeing." 220. Or "the emptiness of being." 221 . See stage 6, n. 3 above, for "cessation." 222. The "common flock" is a reference to the sravakas. The two wings are . skillful' means, which has to do with conventional truth, and wisdom, which has to do with the truth of the highest meaning. ·.~
1~ [
Notes to Pages 185-190
265
STAGE SEVEN 1. La Vallee Poussin numbers the five stanzas which describe stages 7-10 across chapter boundaries. His decision to group these last four stages together probably reflects their common concern with the development of skillful means. 2. Cf. TKP, 442: "It is called 'cessation in suchness' because at the time of [his J noble balanced concentration (tifyasamiidhi) all conceptual diffusion associated with the appearance of dualism ceases in ' suchness.' "
STAGE EIGHT 1. That is, the buddhas turn the bodhisattva away from reified concepts of isolated, individual liberation and direct him back into the stream of everyday life, where his resolution to act for the benefit of all living beings is reaffirmed and brought to perfection. The event is discussed in DB, 43 .
STAGE NINE 1. Meaning unclear.
QUALITIES AND FRUITS OF THE TEN STAGES 1. We have used La Vallee Poussin's numbering. 2. Cf. MAB, 355 : "Only in a stainless sky can the moon illuminate all living beings, and similarly . .. the powers [of a buddha] are produced [in order to contribute indirectly] to the eradication of any delusion that obstructs attainment of the [totality of] the blessed buddha 's qualities ." The powers of a buddha remove the stain of delusion from the bodhisattva (the sky) so that the light of the buddha's qualities (the moon) can illuminate all beings. 3. Cf. ibid., 356: "For example, even though jugs, bowls, and other such vessels are different, still they are equivalent insofar as they are [all] hollow, and the space inside them is not different. Similarly, even though form, feeling, and the other psychophysical aggregates are different [from each other], they are real in that each possesses the distinguishing characteristic of nonproduction . In this way they are without difference and should be understood as identical." This is the "sameness" (samatii) of all things, their emptiness of any intrinsically valid existence. 4. TKP, 456: "If there is no arising, that is, no production of a concept which penetrates reality, then in the absence of a knower of reality, who is it that can reasonably be credited by you with having taught to other disciples: 'I have completely penetrated reality, which possesses the distinguishing characteristic [of nonproduction]'? [Such a claim] would be unreasonable." 5. Cf. ibid.: "If one asserts that although the reality of form and so forth is intrinsically unproduced, (this reality] is known by the intellect, [then we raise
266
Notes to Pages 190-/94
the following objection]. When one asserts that reality is intrinsically the peace of nonproduction, then it must also be accepted [as a consequence] that the intellect-that is, wisdom (prajna)-would in no way penetrate to such an object. And on this account, if one goes on to maintain that the intellect does indeed penetrate to a reality intrinsically devoid of production, then what image of an object will that intellect (cognition) possess? No image at all, it would seem. Therefore, in the absence of any object whatsoever, the intellect cannot penetrate to reality." The Prasangika offers the following cryptic response to this objection (cf. MAE, 358): "It is not that there is some knowledge or another of a given object such that reality is understood through the medium of a reified concept. This is the case simply because both knowledge and the object of knowledge are unproduced." Perhaps the argument here is that the intellect can conceive of reality only indirectly, through the concepts and sensory impressions which act as its objects. It must always function in the context of conventional truth, recognizing distinctions between things in time and space and defining their relationships to one another. The nondualistic knowledge of a buddha, however, is immersed both in conventional truth and in the truth of the highest meaning, where all such distinctions are perceived as interdependent features of everyday experience. See the remarks on nondualistic knowledge in §4.10 and in §5.4: "Nondualistic knowledge." Dualistic knowledge divides; nondualistic knowledge contextualizes. TKP, 459: "Like water mixed with water, this [nondualistic] knowledge is fixed in sameness." 6. The most obvious "sound" is the voice of a buddha. 7. The deeds of a buddha are accomplished without any effort, since the body of a buddha, as well as any acts that he may perform, are all produced through the merit gained during his time as a bodhisattva. 8. This last line is not entirely clear. An alternative translation is "this [peace] is directly experienced as the body [of the buddha]." 9. A wish-fulfilling crystal (cintiimarzi) is able to grant any wish to the person who possesses it. Even though the gem is responsive to the thoughts and feelings of its owner, it is devoid of any conceptual mechanism. 10. That is, it is realized through the body of bliss (cf. TKP, 466). 11. Jambudvipa is the southernmost continent of the four which surround the mythological mount Meru. It includes (or is equivalent to) India. 12. It is unclear here whether khams (Skt. dhiitu) refers to material elements or to the realms governed by the buddhas. 13. "Intentions" or "motivations" are of two broad types. MAE, 378: " 'Intentions' are misleading doubts that remain, and these intentions are 'faculties' in the sense that they facilitate production of clinging and so on. The word 'various' alludes to intentions [of a second type] which are the causes of virtues like conviction, and so forth." 14. This refers to the twenty-two faculties enumerated in MVP, § 108. 15. See note to 6.207. 16. Cf. RV5.61-64; also CS. 17. The Inferior Vehicle {Hinayana) and the Great Vehicle (Mahayana). 18. There are five "impurities" (paiicakG.!iiyas) enumerated in MVP, §124. First is ayu!zkG.!iiya, the decrease in lifespan in this epoch, then dr~.tikG.!iiya, dog-
Notes to Pages 195-197
•
267
matic philosophical or religious beliefs grounded in reified thought, kleialca!iiya, the affiictions, primarily the affiiction of clinging, sattvak~iiya, the impurity of existence as an ignorant living being, and kalpalca!iiya, the problem of living in a degenerate time. . ' 19. See MAB, 403, for the information in these brackets.
EPILOGUE 1. Cf. MAB, 77, translated and discussed in stage 6, n. 5.
l I
I
-
I
l
r
I I
BIBLIOGRAPHY
i p !
Abbreviated references to editions and translations of Sanskrit, Tibetan, and Chinese texts are listed under "Primary Sources." Full references to these and other works are found under "Secondary Sources." This is a select bibliography; the works included here are only those cited within the text and notes of this book. For more information on particular topics, the reader should consult the bibliographies mentioned in §3, n. 1.
PRIMARY SOURCES PALl References are to Pali Text Society editions and translations unless specified otherwise.
A Anguttara Nikiiya U Udiina
CV Cullavagga D Dfttha Nikiiya DP Dhammapada Piilied., Eng. trans., Radhakrishnan 1950. MV Mahiivagga VVinaya VM Buddhaghosa. Visuddhimagga Eng. trans., Nanamoli 1976. S Samyutta Nikiiya
SANSKRIT AK Abhidharmakoia ofVasubandhu Skt. ed., Pradhan 1975 (with Vasubandhu 's bhii$ya). Fr. trans., La Vallee Poussin 1971.
269
270
Bibliograph)
AS A~_tasiihasri!caprajiiiipiiram£tii Skt. ed., Vaidya 1960a. Eng. trans., Conze 1975. CS Catu!lfataka of Aryadeva Tib. ed. with Skt. fragments, Lang 1986. CSt Catu!tstava of N agarjuna Skt./Tib. ed., Eng. trans., Lindtner 1982. TSN Trisvabhiivanirdefa ofVasubandhu Skt./Tib. ed., Fr. trans., La Vallee Poussin 1932-1933. Eng. trans., Kochumuttom 1982, 90-126; Anacker 1984, 287-298. DB Dafabhiimika Skt. ed., Vaidya 1967. PV Paiicavimsatisiihasrikiiprajiiiipiiramitii Skt. ed., Dutt 1934. PSP Prasannapadii ofCandraklrti Skt. ed., see under MS. Eng. trans., Sprung 1979 (chaps. 1-10, 13, 15, 18, 19, 22-25); Stcherbatsky 1927, 79-212 (chaps. 1 and 25). (Fr. trans.,)Jong 1949, 1-86 (chaps. 18-22); May 1959,51-298 (chaps. 2-4, 6-9, 11' 23-24, 26-27). Ger. trans., Schayer 1931a (chaps. 5 and 12-16) and 1931b (chap. 10). BCA Bodhicaryiivatiira of Siintideva, with the paiijilca of Prajiiakaramati Skt. ed., Vaidya 1960b. Eng. trans., Matics 1970; Batchelor 1979. Fr. trans., La Vallee Poussin 1907. BB Bodhisattvabhiimi Skt. ed., Wogihara 1971. Eng. trans. (ofpart 1:4 Tattviirthapa.talam), Willis 1979. MA Madhyamakiivatiirakiirilca ofCandraklrti Tib. ed. ,La Vallee Poussin 1907-1912 (with Candrakirti's bhif.!ya). Eng. trans. of 1-5, Hopkins 1980; and of6, Rabten & Batchelor 1983. Fr. trans. of 1-5, 6.1-165, La Vallee Poussin 1907-1911. Ger. trans. of6.166-226, Tauscher 1981. MAB Madhyamakiivatiirabhif.!ya of Candraklrti Tib. ed. and trans., see MA. Chin. trans., Fa zun 7;1;~ 1975. Jap. trans. of6, Ogawa 1976. MPPS Mahiiprajiiiipiiramitii-siistra (also -upadeia), attributed to Niigiirjuna Chin. trans., T.1509, vol. 25, pp. 57A-756B. Eng. trans. of extracts, Ramanan 1966. Fr. trans. of 1 and 2.20, Lamotte 1944-1980. MVA Mahiivastu avadiina Skt. ed., Senart 1882-1897. MVK Madhyiintavibhiigakiirikii of Maitreyaniitha Skt. ed., Nagao 1964 (with Vasubandhu's bhif.!ya). Eng. trans., Anacker 1984, 191-286 (with Vasubandhu's bhii~ya); Kochumuttom 1982, 27-89 (with extracts from Vasubandhu's bhif.!ya). MVKB Madhyiintavibhiigakiirikiibhii~ya ofVasubandhu
Bibliography
t-
271
Skt. ed., see MVK. Eng. trans., see MVK. MS Madhyamakaiiistra of Nagarjuna Skt. ed., La Vallee Poussin 1903-1916 (with Candrakirti's PrasanMpado.}; Jong 1977. Eng. trans., Inada 1970. MSA Mahiiyiinasiitriilaillciira of Asanga Skt . ed., Levi 1907-1911. MVP Mahiivyutpatti Tib. ed., Sakaki 1916-1925. MMV Miilarruuihyamakavrttibuddhapiilita of Buddhapiilita Tib. ed. , Eng. trans . of1-21, Saito 1984. RV Ratniivall of Nagarjuna Skt./Tib./Chin. ed., Hahn 1982. Eng. trans., Hopkins 1975. LA Lankiivatiirasiitra Skt. ed., Vaidya 1963. Eng. trans . , Suzuki 1932. VP Vajracchedikii prajiziipiiramitii Skt. ed., Conze 1974. Eng. trans., Conze 1958. VV Vigrahavyiivartanl Skt . ed., Eng. trans. , Bhattacharya, Johnston, and Kunst 1978. VN Vimalaklrtinirdefasiitra Tib. ed., Oshika 1970. Eng. trans., Thurman 1976. Fr. trans., Lamotte 1962. SS Si/qiisamuccaya of Santideva Skt. ed ., Vaidya 1961. Eng. trans ., Bendall and Rouse 1922 . SP Saddharmapu!l¢arlka Skt . ed., Dutt 1953. Eng. trans ., Kern 1884. SN Samdhinirmocanasiitra Tib . ed . , Fr. trans., Lamotte 1935. SBS SubhiiJitasamgraha Skt. ed., Bendall1903-1904.
TIBETAN TKP Tsong kha pa. dBu ma Ia 'jug pa 'i rgya cher bshad pa dgongs pa rab gsa/ Tib. ed., P6143, vol. 154. Tib. ed., Sarnath 1971. Eng. trans. of 1-5, Hopkins 1980. C Co ne bs Tan 'gyur Microfiche ed . of the Tibetan canon. New York: Institute for Advanced Studies of World Religions. D sDe dge bsTan 'gyur
272
Bibliography
Xylograph of the Tibetan canon. Sarnath, India: Central Institute of Higher Tibetan Studies. N sNar thang bsTan 'gyur Xylograph of the Tibetan canon. Dharamsala, India: Library of Tibetan Works and Archives. P Peking bsTan 'gyur Edition of the Tibetan canon. Suzuki 1958.
CHINESE T TaisM-shinshii-daiziikyii Edition of the Chinese canon. Takakusu and Watanabe 1922-1933. Tokyo.
SECONDARY SOURCES Anacker, S. 1984. Seven works of Vasubandhu. Delhi. Barfield, 0. 1965. Saving the appearances: a study in idolatry. New York. Batchelor, S. 1979. A guide to the Bodhisattva's way of life. Dharamsala. Bateson, G. 1980. Mind and nature, a necessary unity. Toronto. Becker, A. L. 1982. Beyond translation: esthetics and language description. In Heidi Byrnes, ed., Georgetown University round table on languages and linguistics, 1982: 124-138. Becker, E. 1973. The denial of death. New York. Bendall, C. 1903-1904. Subh~ita-samgraha. An anthology of extracts from Buddhist works compiled by an unknown author, to illustrate the doctrines of scholastic and of mystic (Tantric) Buddhism. Museon, n.s. 4:375-402; 5:5-46, 245-274. Bendall, C., and W. H. D. Rouse 1922. Sik$iisamuccaya: a compendium of Buddhist doctrine. London. Betty, L. S. 1983. Nagarjuna's masterpiece-logical, mystical, both or neither? Philosophy East and West 33 (2): 123-138. Bhattacharya, K. 197 4. A note on the interpretation of the term siidhyasama in Madhyamaka texts. journal of Indian Philosophy 2:225-230.
Bibliography
273
Bhattacharya, K., E. H. Johnston, and A. Kunst 1978. The dialectical 1Mhod of NagarjuTUJ. Delhi. Blofeld,J. 1970. The tantric mysticism of Tibet. New York. Cavell, S. 1966. The availability of Wittgenstein's later philosophy. Philosophical Review 71:67-93. Reprinted in George Pitcher, ed., Wittgenstein: the philosophical investigations, 151-185. Notre Dame, Ind. Chimpa, L ., and A. Chattopadhyaya 1970. Taraniitha 's history of Buddhism in India. Simla. Conze, E. 1958. Buddhist wisdom hooks. London . 1959. Buddhist scnptures. Harmondsworth . 1962. Buddhist thought in India. London. 1967. Spurious parallels to Buddhist philosophy. Philosophy East and West 13 (2): 105-116. Reprinted in Thirty years of Buddhist studies (Oxford): 229-242. . 197 4. Vajracchedilca prajiiaparamita. Rome. 1975. The klrge siitra on perfect wisdom. Berkeley. Culler,]. 1983. On tkconstruction. London . Dayal, H. 193 2. The bodhisattva doctn'ne in Buddhist literature. London . Daye, D. 1975. Miidhyamika. In C . S. Prebish, ed., Buddhism: a motkrn perspective. Pennsylvania. Demieville, P. 1929-1979. Hobogirin : dictionTUJire encyclopidique du bouddhisme d'apres les sources chinoises etjaponaises. Tokyo and Paris. 1973. Choix d'itutks bouddhiques. Leiden. Dhargyey, N . 197 4. Tibetan tradition of mental tkvelopment. Dharamsala. Dutt,N. 1934. The paiicavimiatisahasn'lca prajiiapiiramita. London. 1953. The saddharmapuru;lan7c4. Calcutta. Edwards, P. 1967. Encyclopedia ofphilosophy. New York. Evans-Wentz, W. Y. 1951 . Tibet's great yogi, Milarepa. London. Fann, K . T . 1969. Wittgenstein ~ conception ofphilosophy. Berkeley. Fa zun (?!~) 1975. Ru zhong lun (.A.q:. ~) . Taipei.
27-4
Bibliography
Fenner, P. G. 1983. Candrakirti's refutation of Buddhist idealism. Philosophy East and West 33 (3): 251-262. Feyerabend, P. 1975. Againstmethod. London. 1987. Farewell to reason. London. Frauwallner, E. 1956. Die Philosophie des Buddhismus. Berlin. Gadamer, H. 1976. Philosophical hermeneutics. Edited and translated by David E. Linge. Berkeley. 1988. Truth and method. Translated by Garrett Barden and john Cumming. New York. Reprint. Gimello, R. M. 1976a. Chih-Yen (602-668) and the foundations of Hua-Yen Buddhism. Ph.D. diss., Columbia University. 1976b. Apophatic and kataphatic discourse in Mahayana: a Chinese view. Philosophy East and West 26 (2): 11 7-136. Gouldner, A. 1973. The do.rk silk of the dialectic: toward a new objectivity. Dublin. Gudmunsen, C. 1977. Wittgenstein and Buddhism. New York. Guenther, H. V. 1958. The levels of understanding in Buddhism. journal of the American Oriental Society 78: 19-28. Hahn,M. 1982. Niigiirjuna's Ratniivall. Vol. 1, The basic texts (Sanskrit, Tibetan, Chinese). Bonn. Hamilton, C. H. 1950. The idea of compassion in Mahayana Buddhism. journal of the American Oriental Society 70:145-151. Hanayama, S. 1961. Bibliography on Buddhism. Tokyo. 1 Hastings, J. 1916. Encyclopedia of religion and ethics. Edinburgh.
Hopkins,]. 1975. The precious garland and the song of the four mind.fulnesses. New York. 1980. Compassion in Tibetan Buddhism. London. Homer, I. B. 1938-1952. The book of discipline. 5 vols. Vol. 1, Vinaya, Suttavibhanga, 1938; vol. 2, Vinaya, Suttavibhanga, 1940; vol. 3, Vinaya, Suttavibhanga, 1942; vol. 4, Mahiivagga, 1951; vol. 5, Cullavagga, 1952. Oxford. 1954. The middle length sayings (Majjhimanikiiya). Vol. 1. London.
275
Bibliography
Huntington, C . W. 1983a. A non-referential view of language and conceptual thought in the work ofTs01'1-kha-pa. Philosophy East and West 33 (4): 325-340. 1983b. The system of the two truths in the Prasannapadii and the Madhyamakiivatiira: a study in Madhyamaka soteriology. journal of Indian Philosophy 11 (1) : 77-107. 1986. The Akutobhaya and early Indian Madhyamaka. Ph.D. diss., University of Michigan. lida, S. 1980.
Reason and emptiness. Tokyo.
lnada, K. 1970. Niigarjuna: a translmion of his M ulamadhyamakakarikii with an introductory essay. Tokyo . James, W. [1910) 1963.
Pragrnatism and other essays. New York.,
Jones,]. J. 1949-1956. The Mahavastu. Vols. 16, 18, and 19 in Sacred books dhists. London .
of the Bud-
Jong,J . W. de 1949. Cinq chapitres de la Prasannapada. Paris . 1974. The study of Buddhism: problems and perspectives. Studies in IndoAsian Art and Culture 4 (Vira Commemorative Volume): 13-26. 1975. LalegendedeSiintideva. Indo-/ranianjournal16(3): 161-182. 1977 . Nagarjuna: Miilamadhyamakakiirikti/1. Madras. Kajiyama, Y. 195 7. Bhiivaviveka and the Priisarigika school. Nava- Nalanda Research Publication 1:289-331. 1966. An introduction to Buddhist philosophy : an annotated translation of the Tarkabh~a of Mok~iikaragupta . Memoirs of the Faculty of Letters, Kyoto University (Kyotodaigaku bungakubu kiyo), no. 10:1-173. Kaufmann, W . 1968. The Portable Nietzsche. New York. Kawamura, L . 1975. Goldenzep~yr. Emeryville, Calif. Keith, A. B. 1923. Buddhist philosophy in India and Ceylon. Oxford. Kern,J . H. C. 1884. The Saddharmapur:u;larika, or the lotus of the true law. Vol. 21 in Sacred Books of the East. Oxford. 1896. Manual of Indian Buddhism. Strasbourg. King,W. 1980. Theraviida Meditation . Philadelphia. Kochumuttom, T. 1982 . A Buddhist doctrine of experience. Delhi .
I I
'I
276
Bibliography
Kuhn, T . S. 1962. The structure of scientific revolutions. Chicago. Lamotte, E. 1935. Samdhinimwcana siitra: I' explication des mysteres. Tibetan text, edited and translated. Louvain. 1944-1980. Lt traiti dt Ia grande vtrtu dt sagesse dt Niigiirjuna (Mahiiprajniipiiramitiiiiistra). 5 vols. Louvain . 1962. L 'enseignemmLdt Vimalakfrti (Vimalalcfrtinirdtia). Lou vain. Lang, K . 1986. Aryadeva's Catub§ata.ka: on the bodhisattva's cultivation of merit and knowledge. Copenhagen. La Vallee Poussin, L. de 1903-1916. Miilamadhyama.ka.karikas (Madhyamikasutras) dt Nqgiirjuna avec Ia Prasannapada commmtaire dt Candraklrti. Bibliotheca Buddhica 4. St. Petersburg. 1907. Bodhicaryiivatiira: introduction a Ia pratique dtsjuturs Bouddhas. Poeme de Santideva. Paris. 1907-1911. Madhyama.kavatara: introduction au traiti du milieu de l'iiciirya Candralcfrti, avec /e commentaire dt / 'auteur. Translated from the Tibetan. Parts 1-3 . Muston 8:249-317 (Avant-propos, MA 1-5); 11 :271-358 (MA 6. 1-80); 12:235-328(MA 6.81-165). 1907-1912. Madhyamalciivatiira par Candrakfrti (Tibetan trans .). Bibliotheca Buddhica 9. St. Petersburg. Reprint, Osnabriick (1970); Tokyo (1977). 1916. Bodhisattva. Encyclopedia of religion and ethics 2:739-7 53. 1932-1933. Le petit traite de Vasubandhu-Nii.gii.rjuna sur les trois natures. Milanges chino is et bouddhiques 2: 14 7-161. Brussels. 1971. L'Abhidharmalcoia dt Vasubandhu. 6 vols. Melanges chinois et bouddhiques 16. Bruxelles. Reprint. Levi, S. 1907-1911. Asariga, Mahiiyiina-Siitriilamkiira. Expose de Ia doctrine du grand vehicule selon le systeme Yogacii.ra. Edited and translated . 2 vols. Paris. Lindtner, C. 1979. Candra.kirti's Pancaskandhaprakararta. Acta Orientalia 40:87-145 . 1982 . Niigiirjuniana: studies in the writings and philosophy of Niigiirjuna. Copenhagen. Lopez, D. S. 198 7. A study of Sviitantrika. Ithaca. Matics, M . 1970. Entning the path to enlightenment. London. Matilal, B. K . 1971. Epistemology, logic and grammar in Indian philosophical analysis. The Hague.
J
1
Bibliography
1974. May,J. 1959.
1978. 1979.
277
A note on the Nyaya fallacy sadhyasama and petitio principii. journal of Indian Philosophy 2:211-224.
Candraklrti. Prasannapadii Madhyamo.lcnvrtti. Douze chapitres traduits du sanskrit et du tibetain, accompagnes d'une introduction, de notes et d'une edition critique de Ia version tibetaine. Paris. On Madhyamaka philosophy. journal of Indian Philosophy 6 (3): 233241. Chugan. In Hobogirin 5:470-493.
Mimaki, K. 1982. Blogsalgrubmtha'. Kyoto. Mookerjee, S. 1975. The Buddhist philosophy of universal flux. Delhi. Reprint. Moore, G. E. 1955. Wittgenstein's lectures. Mind 64:1-27. Murti, T. R. V. 1960. The central philosophy of Buddhism. London. Nagao, G. M. 1964. Madhytintavibhagabh~ya: a Buddhist philosophical. treatise., Edited from the Sanskrit. Tokyo. Nanamoli 1 1976. The path of purification. Berkeley. Reprint. NaQananda 1976. Concept and reality in early Buddhist thought. Kandy. Naudou,J. 1968. Les bouddhistes Kafmlrens au Moyen Age. Paris. Nyanatiloka 1972. Buddhist dictionary: manual of Buddhist terms and doctn.nes. Colombo. Obermiller, H. 1931-1932. Bu-ston: history of Buddhism. Leipzig. Ogawa, I. 1976. Kiisho Shiso no Kenkyii ~tl:.~.:m(.T)jijf1£ (Research on the concept of su; yata). Kyoto. Olson, R. F. 1974. Candrakirti's critique of the Vijiianavada. Philosophy East and West 24 (4): 405-411. Oshika,J. 1970. Tibetan text of Vimalaklrtinirdeia. Acta Indologica I: 137-240. Pezzali, A. C. 1968. Stintideva: mystique bouddhiste des VIle et VIlle siecles. Florence. Potter, K. 1970. The encyclopedia of Indian philosophies, Vol. 1, Bibliography. Bombay.
278
Bibliography
Pradhan, P. 1978. Abhidharmalcoiabh(iiyam of Vasubandhu. Deciphered and edited by Prahlad Pradhan. Revised with introduction and indexes by Aruna Haldar. Patna. Rabten, G., and S. Batchelor 1983 . Echoes of voidness. London. Radhakrishnan , S. 1950. The Dhammapada. With introduction , Piili text, English trans ., and notes. Oxford . Ramanan , K . V. 1966 . Niigiirjuna's philosophy as presented in the Mahiiprajnapiiramitii-siitra. Tokyo. Richards, G . 1978. Siinyatii: objective referent or via negativa? Religious Studies 14 (2) : 251260.
:1
Robinson, R. 1957 . Some logical aspects of Nagarjtina's system. Philosophy East and West 6 (4): 291-308. 1967 . Early Madhyamilca in India and China. Madison, Wis. 1972 . Did Nagarjuna really refute all philosophical views? Philosophy East and West 22 (3): 325-331 . Rorty, R . 1979. Philosophy and the mirror of nature. Princeton . 1982 . Consequences of pragmatism. Minneapolis. Ruegg, D . S. 1967 . The study of Indian and Tibetan thought. Leiden. 1971. Le Dharmadhiitustava de Nagarjuna. Etudes tibitaines dediies a Ia mimoire de Marcelle Lalou, 448-4 71. Paris . 1981. The literature of the Madhyamaka school ofphilosophy in India. Wiesbaden. 1983 . On the thesis and assertion in the MadhyamakaldBu rna . Contributions on Tibetan and Buddhist Religion and Philosophy 2:205-242 . Vienna . 1985. Purport, implicative and presupposition : Sanskrit abhipraya and Tibetan dgm1s paldgons g:!i as hermeneutical concepts . journal of Indian Philosophy 13 :309-325 . Rtines, D . D . 1942. Dictionary ofphilosophy. New York. Saito, A. 1984. Buddhapiilita-miilamadhyamalca-vrtti. Ph.D. diss., Australian National University. Sakaki , R . 1916-1925 . Bon-zo-kan-wa Shiyaku-taii>O Honyaku Myogi Taishii. Text of thj Mahiivy utpatti in Sanskrit , Tibetan , Chinese, and J apanese . 2 vols Kyoto. Reprint , l bkyo (1965).
Ill.
,. !
I
j,
1
Bibliography
279
Sarnath 1971. Dbu ma Ia 'jug pa 'i rgya chn- bsluzd pa dgongs pa rah gsal. P 6143 (vol. 154). Edited and published by Vii na mtho dge !dan spyi las khang. Schayer, S. 1931a. Ausgewahlte Kapitel aus tier PrasannapadQ.. (Chaps. 5, 12-16.) With introduction, translation, and remarks . Cracow. 1931b. Feuer· und Brennstoff: Ein Kapitel aus dem Miidhyamikaiastra des Nagarjuna mit der vrtti des Candrakirti. Rocznilc Orientalistyczny 7:2652. Senart, E. 1882-1897. Le Mahavastu. Sanskrit text with introduction and commentary. 3 vols. Paris. !
1
Sprung, M . 1979. Tht lucid exposition oftht middle way. Boulder, Colo. Stcherbatsky, T. 1923. Tht central conception of Buddhism and tht meaning of the word "dlw.rma." London . 192 7. The conception of Buddhist nirvana. Leningrad. Streng, F. 1967. Emptiness: a study in religious meaning. Nashville. Suzuki, D . T. 1900. Afvaghosa's discourse on tht awakening of bodhicitta (Mahayiinairaddhotpiido.Sastra). Chicago. 1930. Studies in tht Lanlciivatarasiitra. London. 1932. The Lanlciivatiirasiitta-a Mahayana text. London . 1958. (ed.) The Tibetan Tripitaka. Tokyo-Kyoto. 1963. Outlines of MalziiyantJ. Buddhism. New York . Tauscher, H. 1981. Candralcirti. Madhyamalciivatiira und Madhyamalciivatarabh(#yam. German translation of6.166-266 with commentary. Vienna. 1983. Some problems of textual history in connection with the Tibetan translations of the Madhyamalciivatiira!z and its commentary. Contributions on Tibetan and Buddhist Religion and Philosophy 2:293-304. Vienna. Taylor, A. E. 1903. Elemerztsofmetaphysics. London . Taylor, M. C. 1978. Towards an ontology of relativism . Journal of tht American Academy of Religion 46:41-62. Taylor, R . 1967. Causation. Encyclopedia ofphilosophy 2:56-66. Tenzin Gyatso 197 5. The Buddhism of Tibet and the lcey to the middlr Wt!Y· London .
280
Bibliography
Thurman, R. A. F. 1976. TheholyteochingofVimalalr:lrti. University Park, Pa. 1980. Philosophical nonegocentricism in Wittgenstein and Candrakirti in their treatment of the private language problem. Philosophy East and West 30 (3): 321-337. Ui,H. 1924. The works ofMaitrey as a historical person and of Asaitga.Journal of Indian and Jjuddhist Studies (Indogaku Bulckyogaku Kenkyii), 306-414. Vaidya, P. L. 1960a. A!.tasiihasrikaprajiiiipiiramitii Buddhist Sanskrit Texts 4. Darbhanga. 1960b. Bodh.icaryiivatiira of Siintideva. Buddhist Sanskrit Texts 12. Darbhanga. 1961. Sik;riisamuccaya of Siintideva. Buddhist Sanskrit Texts 11. Darbhanga. 1963. Saddharma-Lmilr.iivatiirasiitram. Buddhist Sanskrit Texts 3. Darbhanga. 1967. Daiabhiimikasiitra. Buddhist Sanskrit Texts 7. Darbha,nga. Wallesar, M. 1922. The life of Niigiirjuna from Tibetan and Chinese sources. Asia Major (HirthAnniversary Volume), 421-455. Warder, A. K. 1970. Indian Buddhism. Bombay. Whitehead, A. F. N. 1938. Modes of thought. New York. Whorf, B. L. 1956. Language, thought and reality. Boston. Williams. P. 1984. Review of Lindtner, Niigiirjuniana: studies in the writings and philosophy of Niigiirjuna. journal of Indian Philosophy 2: 73-104. Willis,]. 1979. On knowing reality: the Tattviirtha chapter ofAsariga 's Bodhisattvabhiimi. New York. Wittgenstein, L. 1953. Philosophical investigations. New York. 1965. Lectures and conversations. Berkeley. Wogihara, U. 1971. Bodh.isattvabhiimi: a statement of [the) whole course of the bodhisattva (being [theJfifteenth section of[ the) Yogiiciirahhiimi). Tokyo. Zurcher, E. 1972. The Buddhist conquest of China. 2 vols. Leiden. Reprint.
INDEX
~ I
Abhidharma: and correspondence theory of truth, 31; ideation in, 85-86; perception in, 85-86; as soteriological philosophy, 84 Abhidha1711JJkoia on suffering, 93 Absolutism (iaivaliiviida), Madhyamika's rejection of, 29 Absolutist interpretation: conflict with classical Mii.dhyamika, 26; history of, 26-30; limitations of, 28 Action (nonvolitional), bodhisattva's commitment to, 103 Actualization of study and. reason in meditation, 81. See aLso Emptiness Afflictions (lcl.eias), annihilation of, 91 Aggivesana, 75 Agitation (vikfepa), reduction of, 76 Analytical knowledge (pratisamvid), 100, 182, 187, 264n. 218 Appearance: for the bodhisattva, 120; significance of, 110 Application: of emptiness, 116-: 117; and meaning, 118; and understanding, 113; and validity, 51. See also Purpose; Use Aryadeva, 237 n. 63; life and works, 33; on philosophical views, 98 Asailga, 60, 64, 65; on patience, 73 Asian religion, study of, 5-8 Attitude, significance of, 121-122 Balanced concentration (samtidhi): and good character, 77; highest form of, 82; and morality, 71; and nondualistic knowledge, 103; and nonreferential meaning, 39; opponent to, 71 Bateson, G., 117 Becker, A. L., 9-10 Becker, E., 87, 141; on suffering, 93 Being (bluiva), reified concepts of, 30 Bhavaviveka: characteristics of his phi los-
ophy, 34-35; and Yogii.cara, 61. See also Svatantrika Bloom, H., 8 Bodhisattva: central characteristics of, 19; etymology of the name, 19; literature on, 19 Bodies of the buddha, three, 224n. 7 Bonds (samyojanas), three, 149; definition of, 219n. 9 Brahman and emptiness, 26 Buddhapalita, life and works of, 33 Bu stan, 25 Calming (iamotluJ), characteristics of, 77 Candragomin, 33 Candrakirti, life and works of, 33-34 Carriage: meaning of the word, 53; reality of, 52-53; as a simile for the self, 173, 177; 256-257n.164 Causal efficacy: as mark of empirical truth, 23, 234n. 50; nature of, 235236n. 57; and reality, 58 Causality: analysis in MA, 96; and emptiness, 55; and illusion, 57-58; importance of, in Buddhism, 47; for Nagarjuna and Candrakirti, 43 ; necessity for, 250; and ontology, 41, 45; in Western philosophy, 41-42 Causa-sui project, 141 Cavell, S., 125 Cittamii.tra. See Yogacara Clinging: to an "I," cognitive basis of, 172, 174; and referential meaning, 39; and spiritual ignorance, 123; and suffering, 106 Compassion, three types of, 219n. 3 Concept: and experience, 53; invalid, 51; valid, 80 Conceptual diffusion (prapanca), 209n. 101, 232n. 44; calming of,
281
282 205n. 25; cessation of, 136; and emptiness, 55; and invalid concepts, 51; and meditation, 77; and objectivity, 96; as root of suffering, 30; in Yogaciira, 63 Conceptualization in Abhidharma, 85-86 Conceptual thought, dichotomous nature of, 121 Confidence (maM) as a quality of energy, 73-74 Connection (priipti): between argument and counter argument, 54; in Sarviistivida, 210n. 110; in Yogiicira, 64 Consciousness and suffering, 124 Context: and illusion, 56-57; and knowledge, 119; philosophical problem of, 124 Continuum (samtiina), 164, 172 Conventional experience: significance of, 67, 101-102, 107, 123, 142, 227n.l2, 231 n. 36, 245n.l04, 260n.l91, 263 n. 205; in Yogiiciira, 61 Culler, J., 139, 140 Cultural illusion, 141 Dalai Lama: on causality, 44-45; on the two truths, 38-40 Deconstruction, 139; ambiguous status of, 140 Deconstructive analysis, xiii; susceptibility to nihilism, 30. &ealso Deconstructive critique; Reductio ad absurdum Deconstructive critique, susceptibility to nihilism of, 26. &ealso Deconstructive analysis; Reductio ad absurdum Deconstructive philosophy and the Middle Way, 36 Dejong,J. W. &ejong,J. W. de Dependent, the (parataniTa), 61; and introceptive activity, 244 n. 100. &e also Intrinsic nature, three types of Dependent being (paratanlrabhiiva), 161 Dependent entity (paratanlravastu), 166 Dependent form (parataniTariipa), 63, 163, 166 Dependent origination (pratftyasamutpiidq.): in Hinayana, 47 Derrida,J., 7,138,199n.3 Descartes, R., 115 Designation alone (prajnaptimatram) in Yogiiciira, 64 Designation, conventional (prajnaptt): emptiness as a, 59; and existence, 50 Designation, dependent (prajnaptirupiidtiya): and conventional experience, 260 n . 191 ; discussion of, in MAB, 253-· 254 n. 141 ; significance of, xii Desperation, need for, 92, 93
Index Dewey,J., 7 Dhnmmapada and mind, 60 Dharma: definition of, for Hinayana, 1718; in Hinayana and Mahayana, 49; in Hinayana philosophy, 202 n. 2 Dharma, body of the, 89; and patience, 73. &ealso Bodies of the buddha, three Dhamuulhiitu, 243n. 94; in Yogiicira, 61, 64 Dhnrmatii, significance of, for Miidhyamika, 237n. 63, 250n.124 Diamondlike convictions, 74-75 Diimaga, 60 DiparilrorajiiJalrll, 19 Disputation, abandoning of, 70 Distinguishing characteristics, three (trilakiaruu), 61. &e also Intrinsic distinguishing characteristic . Dream: in discussion of mind alone, 163; in discussion of potentiality, 165 Edifying philosophy, xiii, 125 Elements of attraction (samgrahnvastus), 99-100 Emotional disturbances, freedom from , 71 Empirical, definition of, 200n . 11 Empirical reality and causality, 48 Empirical truth. &eTruth, conventional Empiricism, radical, 43 Emptiness: actualization of, 39, 40, 59, 82, 100-102, 106, 112, 114, 117; and causality, 55; contextually real, and wisdom, 91; as a conventional designation, 59, 65,111, 207n.69, 209n . 97; dangers in understanding, 22; and deconstruction, 116; emptiness of, 26, 131-132, 180; and generosity, 70; and meditation, 80; mental image of, 57; as a natural interpretation, 82; not clinging to, 112; and philosophical views, 15, 58, 59; self-deconstruction of, 136; sixteen illustrations of, 99; and soteriology, 118; as a synonym for reality, 18; threefold, 89; of truth, 137; of words, 215n. 55; in Yogiiciira, 64-65. &e also Causality; Conceptual diffusion Energy, emptiness of, 181 Enthusiasm as a quality of energy, 7'J Entity alone (vastumatram) in Yogiiciira, 64 Entrustments, four, 74 Entry into the Middle Way, composition of, xi Epistemological philosophy and objectivity, 127 Epistemology in Hlnayiina and Mahayana, 18 Esoteric, 135 Essence, 130; and delusion, 251 n . 132;
Index existentialist view of, 130; lack of, 105; as a metaphysical concept, 52. &e also Intrinsic being Evil: roots of all (akuialamU/4s), 71; types of, 225-226n. 2 Example ( dn_tiinta) in Svatantrika syllogism, 34 Existence: association with conceptualization and perception, 50; and illusion, 56-57; and language, 52 Faith as a source of energy, 75 Feyerabend, P., 46, 78, 132; on incommensurability, 202 n. 9; on prejudice, 107 Form, body of, 154. See also Bodies of the buddha, three Form oflife; of a bodhisattva, 122; and understanding, 59 Foucault, M., 7 Gadamer, H .: criticism of objectivism, 7; on understanding, 202 n ..7 Gateways to deliverance (vimok,amiikhas), 182, 264n. 215 Generosity as an element of attraction, 99 Gimello, R . M., 79; on the linguistic interpretation, 30-31; on meditation, 78 Giving, emptiness of, 181 Goal: relationship with path, 94 Gouldner, A., on objectivity, 128-130 Gudmunsen, C., and the linguistic interpretation, 31-3·2 Hearer (friivalca), characteristics of, 218219n. 1 Heidegger, M ., 7, 134 Hermeneutical circle, 134 Hinayana: as a genre ofliterature, 17-19; literature, and the Middle Way, 36-37 Human life, significance of, 222 n . 6 Hume, D., and Candrakirti, 42 Idealism: presuppositions of, 49; and reality, 52; in Yogacara, 63 Ideation (vi.fti6na) in Abhidharma, 85-86 Illusion, 141, 211 n. 123; of all spiritual practice, 192; clinging to, 87, 253n.l37; and existence, 56-57; ground in language of, 110; and language, 57; in Madhyamika, 55-57; and the Necker cube, 121; no transcent ground of, 142; of personal liberation, 101-105; and philosophical views, 57; of production, 230n . 32 ; of self, in Hinayana, 86; of self, reason for clinging to, 87; in the text of MA, 95; and wisdom,
283 88-89, 91; in Yogacira, 61-62. See also Causality; Cultural illusion Imagination of the unreal ( abhiitaparilcalpita), 62 Imagined, the (parilcalpita), 61. &e also Intrinsic nature, three types of Impartiality (samiiniirtha) as an element of attraction, 100 Impurities, five (pancalcaiiiyas), 266267n _18 · Incommensurability, 132, 202n. 9; of the two truths, 108 Inexpressibles (avyiikrtavastus), 255 n. 157 Insight (vipaiyanii), 142; characteristics of, 81; and wisdom, 77. &ealso Meditation Intellectual flexibility as a quality of patience, 73 Interdependence in the text of MA, 96. &e also Dependent origination Intrinsic being (svabhiiva): definition of, 48; in Mahayana ontology, 18. &e also Essence; Intrinsic nature Intrinsic distinguishing characteristic (svalak!a!lll), 161, 181; emptiness of, 182; significance of the concept, 234n. 53, 238-239n. 70. &ealso Distinguishing characteristics, three Intrinsic nature (svabhiiva): definition of, 49; emptiness of, 183; as perceived by wisdom, 91; three types of, 61-62. &e also Essence; Intrinsic being lntroceptive activity (sviitmanivrttz), 244n.100 Irrationalism, 132, 133 James, W., 7; on causality, 43; on truth,
43-44 Jong, J . W. de, 14 Justification: and causality, 42, 45; in Madhyamika, 138, 139 Justified prejudice, 138, 139 Kant, I., 115; abandoning his distinctions, 29; and Murti, 28; and Yogacara, 63-64 Kasyapa, 57, 221 n . 3 Katyayana and the Middle Way, 37 Keith, A. B., 25 Kern, H., 25 Knowledge, nature of, 113. See also Nondualistic knowledge Kochumuttom, T . , 63 Kuhn, T. S., 117, 132, 138, 202n . 9 Language : antiphilosophical, 130; connection with reality, 54; and existence , 52; and illusion, 57 ; Madhyamika's use of,
284 54; and mental affiictions, 55; and presuppositions, 237-238n. 65; Yogadira's use of, 60, 64, 66. Sualso Metaphysical language Learning, nature of, 113 Liberation for Hinayiina, 87. Su also Conventional experience Linguistic interpretation: history and characteristics of, 30-32; as holistic, 12; uniqueness of, xi Living status, changes in, 74 Logic and soteriology, 35 Logical analysis as normative, 10, 95 Madhyamika, three phases of Western scholarship on, 25-32 Magic as illustration of the three types of intrinsic nature, 62 Mahayana as a genre ofliterature, 17-18 Mara, 156 May,J., 215n.55 Meaning: anticipation of, 134; and application, 118; definitive (niltirtlw.), 38, 66, 168, 238n. 65; historicity of, 200n. 10; necessity for distinction between definitive and nondefinitive, 245-246n. 106; nondefinitive (neytirtha), 38, 168, 238n. 65; nonegocentrist, 113; nonreferential, 31-32, 38-39, 57, 113; philosophical, 135; as pragmatically deter· mined, 53; prescriptive, 53; referential, 31,39 Meditation: emptiness of, 181-182; and energy, 75; as a tod,, 114. See also Balanced concentration; Calming; Concep· tual diffusion; Insight Meditative cultivation as the third type of wisdom (bhtiuantimayi-prajiiti), 80-81 Memory (smrtijntina) in discussion of reflexive awareness, 166 Mms auctoris, 134; as distinguished from the fundamental concern of the text, I~; and proselytic methodology, 6 Mental afflictions (klefas) and language, 55 Mental discipline and patience, 72 Mental faculties (abhijniis), five higher, 22, 224n. 5 ll(f.entalllexibility, 72 . &e alSo Intellectual flexibility Mental image (upalambha): definition of, 211 n.119; of emptiness, 57; in Yogacara, 62, 64 Mental processes, three categories of, 8586 Mental purification (cittauiiuddJu), 77-78; degrees of, 83 Mental triad, 240 n . 79 Merit (purzya) and skillful means, 100
Index Metaphorical imputation (samtiroptid), 247 n. 109 Metaphysical language: definition of, 31; lack of justification, 32 Metaphysical reality and Madhyamika, 45 Methodology: as controlled alienation, 13; and objectivity, 7, 128; and privileged vocabulary, 8. Stt also Scholarship Methodology, philological/text-critical, 126, 134; characteristics of, 5-7; and knowledge, 115 Methodology, proselytic, characteristics of, 6-7 Migration (gat1), 149, 151; bad, 220n. 12 Milarepa on wisdom, 101 Mind: faculties of the, 85-86; influence of, on experience, 76; as a monkey, 51 Mind alone, 162; purpose of the expres· sion, 66; and tathtigatagarbha, 249250n.123 Mindfulness (smrti), 76-77, 116 Morality, emptiness of, 181 Murti, T. R. V.: and absolutism, 27-29; and negation, 27-28 Mystical intuition, 116-117, 137 Mysticism, 118, 126-127, 129, 204n. 12, 206n.53, 217n.33 Nagiirjtma, life and works of, 32 Naiyayika, 28 Natural interpretation: in association with intrinsic and relative being, 48-49; definition of, 46; emptiness as a, 82; and the four noble truths, 105; limitations of, 96; and meditation, 78; power of, 84; and prejudice, 107; and reified thought, 55, 97; role of, in philosophy, 46; seeing and seeing through, 83; significance of, for Madhyamika, 140 Necessary connection and truth, 45 Necessary fiction, 110, 141 Necker cube, 120-121 Negation: nonimplicative, 35; and philosophical views, 59; two types of, 58 Nietzsche, F., 7, 138 Nihilism (ucchedautida), 132, 255n. 155; definition of, 202 n . 5; Madhyamika's rejection of, 29; as misapplied to Madhyamika, 18 Nihilistic interpretation: classical origin of, 30; history of, 25-26; and relativism, 26 Nirviil:la and wisdom, 90 Noble truths, four; as basis of Buddhism, 92 Nonbeing (abhtiua), reified concepts of, 30 Non-Buddhist philosophers, 160; generic sense of the eJ~pression , 247 n. 114
f !
Index Nonclinging: and emptiness, 22, 59, 84; and generosity, 69-70; and study of philosophy, 40 Nondualistic knowledge (advayajnaM), 149; and balanced concentration, 103; and Mahayana epistemology, 18; and sameness, 266n. 5; and wisdom, 90, 104 Nondual unity in Yogiiciira, 64 Nonrealization, 211 n. 123 Nonseeing, 111, 211n.123 Object, discovery or creation of, 50 . Objective support (iilambaM), 151, 221 n. 3 Objectivity, 126, 128-130; and alienation, 13; and epistemological philosophy, 127; as a metaphysical view, 107; and method, criticism of, 7; problem of, 138; and relativism, circle of, 136; and the urge to transcend conventional experience, 39. See also Conceptual diffusion Observational language: and meditation, 78; power of, 84; and prejudice, 107; relation with natural interpretation, 46; significance of, 140 --Occular metaphor, 131 Ontology: and causality, 41, 45; Hinayana and Mahayana, 17-18 Ophthalmia, 162, 163, 164, 165, 169-170, 252n.135 Optical defect (= ophthalmia), 111, 211n.123 Ostensive definition, 118, 126; insufficiency of, 92 Ostensive train_ing, 118 Pain: ontological status of, 119; types of, 90. See also Suffering Path: relationship with goal, 94; significance of, 94 Patience, emptiness of, 181 Perception (samjna): in Abhidharma, 8586; correct (= veridical), 160; direct (pratyalqa), 182; incorrect(= nonveridical), 160; veridical, 50, 160 Perfection (piiramitii): mundane (laulcilcii-), 220n. 20; supramundane (lokotldrii-), 220n. 20 Perfectly accomplished, the (parini~panM), 61. See also Intrinsic nature, three types of Person (pwigala), 167 Petitio principii, 28 Philosophical hermeneutics as critique of method, 7 Philosophical paradigm, 117 Philosophical view. See View, philosophical
285 Philosophy: early Buddhist, 84; role of, in Miidhyamika, 47 Pleasing speech (prlyaviida), 99 Position, rejection of, 178. See also Proposition; Thesis; View, philosophical Practice and theory, 78, 81 Pragmatism, relevance to Miidhyamika of, 10-11 Prasruigika: debate with Sviitantrika, 3436; origin of name, 33, 206n·. 39 Prejudice: inescapability of, 139; justified, 138, 139; and natural interpretations, 107; and observational languages, I 07. See also Presuppositions Prenatal dispositions (samskiiras ), dispelling of, 91 Presuppositions: as basis of views and beliefs, 117; and language, 237238n.65 Private object: and clinging, 39; and referential meaning, 32 Propaganda: as cause for the actualization of emptiness, 111-112; and the emptiness of emptiness, 132; reason for using the term, 125-126; third noble truth as, 94; use of, 11 Proposition (pratijna): and negation, 59; and privileged vocabulary, 8; in Sviitantrika, 34. See also Thesis; View, philosophical Psychophysical aggregates (skandhas), list of, 173 Pudgalaviida, 258 n. 177 Purification of the three spheres (trimart(lala-pansodluma), 220 n. 20 Purpose (prayojaM), !5, 30, 47, 127, 205n. 25, 247 n.110; of the expression "mind alone," 66; fulfilling of, 136; and meaning, xiii; and truth, 50. See also Application; Use Purposeful behavior (arthacaryii), 99-100 Riihulabhadra, life and works of, 33 Rationalism: presuppositions of, 49; as a problem, 116; and reality, 52; roots of, 115. See also Reason Rationalist discourse, paradigmatic form of, 54 Rational thinking: importance of, 107; as a tool, 112 Real: metaphysical import, 51-52; pragmatic definition of, 51 Reality: and causal efficacy, 58; and language, 54, 57; nature of, 122; negation of the concept, 58; as a translation for /attva, 202 n. 3 Reason: legitimate demands of, 137; limitations of, 129, 139; necessity for,
Index
286 160; presuppositions of, 138; as the second type of wisdom (cintamayi-prajfiii), 80; and soteriology, 35; and tradition, 139 Reductio ad absurdum (prasangaviikya): defense of, 98; description of, 34-35; and edifying philosophy, xiii. Su also Deconstructive analysis; Deconstructive critique Reflexive awareness (svasariwitti; svasariwedana), 166, 244-245n.101; as Yogacara doctrine, 60 Reified concept (vikalpa), 160; rejection of, 70; and wisdom, 90 Reified thought: archetypal form of, 203; and associated presuppositions, 106; freedom from, 115; as a mental affliction, 55 Relation, philosophical problem of, 124 Relativism, 131-133; and objectivity, 136, 138 Renunciation and generosity, 69 Repository consciousness (iilayavijfiiina), 96, 163; characteristics of, 238n. 68 Rorty, R., 10, 131, 138; on a priori presuppositions, 217 n. 20; on edifying philosophy, 125; on existentialist objectivity, 130; on gestault switch, 216n. 12; on idealization and grounding, 28; on not holding a view, 135; on the strong textualist, 8 Ruegg, D. S., 14; indiscussionofpragmatics and deconstruction, 8-9 Saint (iirya), 150; transition to, 21 Sameness (samata), 265 n. 3; and nondualistic knowledge, 266n. 5; ten types of, 227 n. 9 Santideva: on confidence, 74; on energy, 73; on generosity, 69; on wisdom, 89 Scholarship: on the Madhyamika, 25-32; philological/text-critical, 139; proselytic, 139. SeealsoMethodology Scientific rationalism and our form oflife, II Self: according to non- Buddhist philosophers, 171; analysis of, in seven alternatives, 98; cognitive basis of, 254n.148; concept of, in Hlnayiina, 86; as a conventional designation, 259n.182; as it appears in meditation, 262 n. 200; reified, as distinguished from "agent," 86-87; two categories of, 97-98; view of (satkiiyadnti), 225 n. 3. See also View, philosophical Self-determination, 149 Selflessness (nairiilmya): as absence of intrinsic being, 256n. 159; and decon-
struction, 129; and generosity, 70; of the knower, 250n. 124; and the Middle Way, 37; and morality, 71; of the object of knowledge, 250n.124; of the person (pudgala-), 97, 179; of things (dharma-), 97' 179 Shape (samsthiina- in discussion of self, 173,176 Skillful means (upiiyakaufalya): philosophy as, 129; and propaganda, 126; and Yogacara use oflanguage, 65 Socialization and understanding, 114 Sociolinguistic community, 125 Solitary buddha (pratyekabuddha), characteristics of, 219 n. I Soteriology: as application of philosophy, 58, 59; Hlnayiina and Mahayana, 1819; importance for Madhyamika, 1314; and reason, 35 Specialized analysis, 14,117, 126 Spiritual ignorance (avidyii), 160; and causality, 45; and clinging, 123; definition of, 97; as ophthalmia, 170; as origin of suffering, 94; and volitional action, 251-252n.134 Stamina: as a quality of energy, 73; as a quality of patience, 72 Stcherbatsky, T., and absolutism, 27 Study as the first type of wisdom (iriitamayl-prajfiii), 80 Subjacent ground, 27. See also Transcendent ground Subject/object dichotomy in Yogacara, 61-62,64 Substrate (iiiraya) in Yogacara, 64:-65 Suchness (tathllta): cessation in, 265 n. 2; realization of, 82; and the two truths, 40 Suffering (du{lkhll): in the Abhidharmakoia, 93; and impermanence, 87; origins of, 94; and philosophical views, 15; significance of, 92-94; three types of, 105106; transformation of, 124; and wisdom, 106. See also Clinging; Conceptual diffusion; Consciousness; Pain Supporting reason (hetu) in Sviitantrika syllogism, 34 Sviitantrika: characteristics of, 34; origin ofthe name, 206n. 39; and Yogiicara, 61. See also Bhavaviveka Syllogism in Sviitantrika, 34 Syllogistic reasoning and the Madhyamika, 35-36 Systematic philosophy: characteristics of, xiii; and philosophical views, xiii Taraniitha, 25 Tathagata: meaning of the epithet, 219n. 8
j
'
'
'!
Index Tathagatagarbha, 249 n. 123 Taylor, A. E., on causality, 43 Taylor, M. C., 130 Tetralemma (cat~ko.ti), 94-96, 158; basic formula of, 38; and reference to a transcendent ground, 204n.12 Theory: relationship with practice, 78 Thesis (~a): and presuppositions, 263 n. 207; and privileged vocabulary, 8. See also Proposition; View, philosophical Thesis, unsubstantiated (siidhya), 165, 243n. 93 Thirst (tmw) as origin of suffering, 94. See also Clinging Thought of awakening (bodhicitta): encouragement of, 21; generation of, 20; three gradations, 20-22 Trace, cognitive (bija), 238 n. 68, 240 n. 83 Tradition: and methodology, 7; and reason, 139 Training, role of, 114-115 Transcendent ground: inherent problem of, 109; in Murti, 27; and the tetralemma, 204n.12 Transmigration, 236n. 58, 251 n.129 Truth: correspondence theory of, 31; of emptiness, 137; multiple, 18; and necessary connection, 45; objective and "modern," 128-130; pragmatic definition of, 43-44; soteriological, and incommensurability, 109; and veridical perception, 50. See also Two truths Truth, conventional (vyavaharasatya; samvrtisatya): levels of, 232-233n.47; and Mahayana epistemology, 18. See also Causal efficacy; Two truths Truth of the highest meaning (paramiirthasatya), 39; and justification of knowledge, 10; and Mahayana epistemology, 18; necessity for noninferential experience of, 233 n. 47. See also Two truths Tsong kha pa on causality, 58 Two truths (satyadvaya), 95, 162; and causality, 4 7-49; definition of, 231 n. 38; incommensurability of, 108; purpose of, 246n.109; system of, 38. See also Dalai Lama; Truth, conventional; Truth of the highest meaning Unapprehended, emptiness of the, 183 Understanding: nature of, 59; and socialization, 114; as a source of energy, 75 Unifying principle, necessity for, 44 Use, 36. See also Application; Purpose
287 V~suban~hu, 60.• 62; on suffering, 93 Vtew, phtlosophtcal (dnti): absence of in Madhyamika, xii, 98; absence of i~ Wesr,rn philosophy, 135; associa;ion with privileged vocabulary, 8; association with substance ontology, 166; a~~ociation with systematic philosophy, xm; attachment and aversion to 201 n. 26; of the buddha, 37, 38;' characteristics of, xii; as destroyed by dependent origination, 171; and emptiness, 58; as evidence of reified thought, 171; extreme (antagraha-), 95; implications of, 216n. 59; as meaningless, 66; and negation, 59; and presuppositions, 117; and Rorty's "occular metaphor," 131; of the self(satkaya-), 37, 155, 171, 175, 225n. 3; and suffering, 15; Vediintic, 130. See also Emptiness; Position, rejection of; Proposition; Thesis Vijiiiinavada. See Yogacara Vijiiaptimatra. See Yogacara Virtue, characteristics of, 83 Volitional action (kamUJ): significance of, 23; source of, in delusion, 170; as source of mind, 167; and spiritual ignorance, 251-252n.134; and suffering, 91; two consequences of, 223n. 4. See also Action (nonvolitional) Vow (prarzidhana): definition of, 21-22; in Dfpatikarajataka, 20
Whorf, B. L., on presuppositions, 237238n.65 Willis, J., 64-65 Wisdom (prajfiii): as a cause (hetubhiita-), 90-92; as a cause, territory governed by, 111-112; connection with theory, 88; as an effect, cultivation of, 109, 113-115; as an effect (phalabhiita-), 90-92; in Hinayiina, 85-87; Madhyamika's redefinition of, 88-89; and Mahayana epistemology, 18; and meditation, 81; and nondualistic knowledge, 104; and suffering, 106; threefold division of, 8081; two types of, 90-92 Wittgenstein, L., 7, 83, 138, 210n.103; on the complexity of philosophy, 201 n. 28; and mysticism, 47; problems raised by, 10, 11; on propaganda, 127 World, sentient and insentient, 248 Worldly person (Prthagjana), 20 Ya8omitra, 248n. 116 Yogacara, names of the school of, 60